![](images/minus.gif)
Text -- Acts 2:13-47 (NET)
![](images/arrow_open.gif)
![](images/advanced.gif)
![](images/advanced.gif)
![](images/advanced.gif)
Names, People and Places, Dictionary Themes and Topics
![](images/arrow_open.gif)
![](images/information.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus_head.gif)
collapse allCommentary -- Word/Phrase Notes (per phrase)
Robertson -> Act 2:13; Act 2:13; Act 2:14; Act 2:14; Act 2:14; Act 2:15; Act 2:15; Act 2:16; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:19; Act 2:19; Act 2:19; Act 2:20; Act 2:20; Act 2:20; Act 2:21; Act 2:22; Act 2:22; Act 2:23; Act 2:23; Act 2:23; Act 2:23; Act 2:23; Act 2:23; Act 2:23; Act 2:24; Act 2:24; Act 2:24; Act 2:24; Act 2:25; Act 2:25; Act 2:25; Act 2:25; Act 2:25; Act 2:26; Act 2:26; Act 2:26; Act 2:27; Act 2:27; Act 2:27; Act 2:28; Act 2:29; Act 2:29; Act 2:29; Act 2:29; Act 2:31; Act 2:31; Act 2:32; Act 2:32; Act 2:33; Act 2:33; Act 2:33; Act 2:33; Act 2:33; Act 2:34; Act 2:34; Act 2:35; Act 2:35; Act 2:37; Act 2:37; Act 2:38; Act 2:38; Act 2:38; Act 2:38; Act 2:39; Act 2:39; Act 2:39; Act 2:39; Act 2:40; Act 2:40; Act 2:40; Act 2:40; Act 2:40; Act 2:41; Act 2:41; Act 2:41; Act 2:41; Act 2:42; Act 2:42; Act 2:42; Act 2:42; Act 2:43; Act 2:43; Act 2:44; Act 2:44; Act 2:44; Act 2:45; Act 2:45; Act 2:45; Act 2:46; Act 2:46; Act 2:47; Act 2:47; Act 2:47; Act 2:47
Robertson: Act 2:13 - -- Mocking ( diachleuazontes ).
Old verb, but only here in the N.T., though the simple verb (without dia ) in Act 17:32. Chleuē means a joke.
Mocking (
Old verb, but only here in the N.T., though the simple verb (without
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:13 - -- With new wine ( gleukous ).
Sweet wine, but intoxicating. Sweet wine kept a year was very intoxicating. Genitive case here after memestōmenoi eisin...
With new wine (
Sweet wine, but intoxicating. Sweet wine kept a year was very intoxicating. Genitive case here after
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:14 - -- Standing up with the eleven ( statheis sun tois hendeka ).
Took his stand with the eleven including Matthias, who also rose up with them, and spoke a...
Standing up with the eleven (
Took his stand with the eleven including Matthias, who also rose up with them, and spoke as their spokesman, a formal and impressive beginning. The Codex Bezae has "ten apostles."Luke is fond of this pictorial use of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:14 - -- Lifted up his voice ( epēren tēn phōnēn autou ).
This phrase only in Luke in the N.T. (Luk 11:29; Act 2:14; Act 14:11; Act 22:22), but is com...
Lifted up his voice (
This phrase only in Luke in the N.T. (Luk 11:29; Act 2:14; Act 14:11; Act 22:22), but is common in the old writers. First aorist active indicative of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:14 - -- Give ear unto my words ( enōtisasthe ta rhēmata mou ).
Late verb in lxx and only here in the N.T. First aorist middle from enōtizomai (en , ...
Give ear unto my words (
Late verb in lxx and only here in the N.T. First aorist middle from
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:15 - -- As ye suppose ( hōs humeis hupolambanete ).
Note use of humeis (ye) for decided emphasis.
As ye suppose (
Note use of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:15 - -- The third hour ( hōra tritē ).
Three o’ clock in the day Jewish time, nine Roman. Drunkenness belongs to the night (1Th 5:7). It was a quick...
The third hour (
Three o’ clock in the day Jewish time, nine Roman. Drunkenness belongs to the night (1Th 5:7). It was a quick, common sense reply, and complete answer to their suspicion.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:16 - -- This is that which hath been spoken by the prophet Joel ( touto estin to eirēmenon dia tou prophētou Iōēl ).
Positive interpretation of the s...
This is that which hath been spoken by the prophet Joel (
Positive interpretation of the supernatural phenomena in the light of the Messianic prophecy of Joe 2:28-32. Peter’ s mind is now opened by the Holy Spirit to understand the Messianic prophecy and the fulfilment right before their eyes. Peter now has spiritual insight and moral courage. The power (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:17 - -- In the last days ( en tais eschatais hēmerais ).
Joel does not have precisely these words, but he defines "those days"as being "the day of the Lord...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:17 - -- I will pour forth ( ekcheō ).
Future active indicative of ekcheō . This future like edomai and piomai is without tense sign, probably like th...
I will pour forth (
Future active indicative of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:17 - -- Of my Spirit ( apo tou pneumatos ).
This use of apo (of) is either because of the variety in the manifestations of the Spirit (1 Corinthians 12) or...
Of my Spirit (
This use of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:17 - -- And your daughters ( kai hai thugateres hūmōn ).
Anna is called a prophetess in Luk 2:36 and the daughters of Philip prophesy (Act 21:9) and Act ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:17 - -- Visions ( horaseis ).
Late word for the more common horama , both from horaō , to see. In Rev 4:3 it means appearance, but in Rev 9:17 as here an e...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:17 - -- Dream dreams ( enupniois enupniasthēsontai ).
Shall dream with (instrumental case) dreams. First future passive of enupniaz from enupnios (en ...
Dream dreams (
Shall dream with (instrumental case) dreams. First future passive of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:17 - -- Yea and ( kai ge ).
Intensive particle ge added to kai (and), an emphatic addition (=Hebrew vegam ).
Yea and (
Intensive particle
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:17 - -- Servants ( doulous )
, handmaidens (doulas ). Slaves, actual slaves of men. The humblest classes will receive the Spirit of God (cf. 1Co 1:26-31)....
Servants (
, handmaidens (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:19 - -- Wonders ( terata ).
Apparently akin to the verb tēreō , to watch like a wonder in the sky, miracle (miraculum ), marvel, portent. In the New T...
Wonders (
Apparently akin to the verb
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:19 - -- As above ( anō ).
This word is not in the lxx nor is "beneath"(katō ), both probably being added to make clearer the contrast between heaven and...
As above (
This word is not in the lxx nor is "beneath"(
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:19 - -- Blood and fire and vapour of smoke ( haima kai pur kai atmida kapnou ).
A chiasm as these words illustrate bloodshed and destruction by fire as signs...
Blood and fire and vapour of smoke (
A chiasm as these words illustrate bloodshed and destruction by fire as signs here on earth.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:20 - -- Shall be turned ( metastraphēsetai ).
Second future passive of metastrephō , common verb, but only three times in the N.T. (Act 2:20 from Joel; J...
Shall be turned (
Second future passive of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:20 - -- Before the day of the Lord come, that great and notable day ( prin elthein hēmeran kuriou tēn megalēn kai epiphanē ).
The use of prin with ...
Before the day of the Lord come, that great and notable day (
The use of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:20 - -- Notable ( epiphanē )
is the same root as epiphany (epiphaneia ) used of the Second Coming of Christ (2Th 2:8; 1Ti 6:14; 2Ti 4:1; Tit 2:13). It tra...
Notable (
is the same root as epiphany (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:21 - -- Shall call on ( epikalesētai ).
First aorist middle subjunctive of epikaleō , common verb, to call to, middle voice for oneself in need. Indefini...
Shall call on (
First aorist middle subjunctive of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:22 - -- Hear these words ( akousate tous logous toutous ).
Do it now (aorist tense). With unerring aim Peter has found the solution for the phenomena. He has...
Hear these words (
Do it now (aorist tense). With unerring aim Peter has found the solution for the phenomena. He has found the key to God’ s work on this day in his words through Joel.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:22 - -- As ye yourselves know ( kathōs autoi oidate ).
Note autoi for emphasis. Peter calls the audience to witness that his statements are true concerni...
As ye yourselves know (
Note
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:23 - -- Him ( touton ).
"This one,"resumptive and emphatic object of "did crucify and slay."
Him (
"This one,"resumptive and emphatic object of "did crucify and slay."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:23 - -- Being delivered up ( ekdoton ).
Verbal adjective from ekdidōmi , to give out or over. Old word, but here only in the N.T. Delivered up by Judas, Pe...
Being delivered up (
Verbal adjective from
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:23 - -- By the determinate counsel and foreknowledge of God ( tēi hōrismenēi boulēi kai prognōsēi tou theou ).
Instrumental case. Note both purpo...
By the determinate counsel and foreknowledge of God (
Instrumental case. Note both purpose (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:23 - -- By the hand ( dia cheiros ).
Luke is fond of these figures (hand, face, etc.) very much like the Hebrew though the vernacular of all languages uses t...
By the hand (
Luke is fond of these figures (hand, face, etc.) very much like the Hebrew though the vernacular of all languages uses them.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:23 - -- Lawless men ( anomōn ).
Men without law, who recognize no law for their conduct, like men in high and low stations today who defy the laws of God a...
Lawless men (
Men without law, who recognize no law for their conduct, like men in high and low stations today who defy the laws of God and man. Old word, very common in the lxx.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:23 - -- Ye did crucify ( prospēxantes ).
First aorist active participle of prospēgnumi , rare compound word in Dio Cassius and here only in the N.T. One ...
Ye did crucify (
First aorist active participle of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:23 - -- Did slay ( aneilate ).
Second aorist active indicative with first aorist vowel a instead of o as is common in the Koiné. This verb anaireō , ...
Did slay (
Second aorist active indicative with first aorist vowel
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:24 - -- God raised up ( ho theos anestēsen ).
Est hoc summum orationis (Blass). Apparently this is the first public proclamation to others than believer...
God raised up (
Est hoc summum orationis (Blass). Apparently this is the first public proclamation to others than believers of the fact of the Resurrection of Jesus. "At a time it was still possible to test the statement, to examine witnesses, to expose fraud, the Apostle openly proclaimed the Resurrection as a fact, needing no evidence, but known to his hearers"(Furneaux).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:24 - -- The pangs of death ( tas ōdinas tou thanatou ).
Codex Bezae has "Hades"instead of death. The lxx has ōdinas thanatou in Psa 18:4, but the Hebre...
The pangs of death (
Codex Bezae has "Hades"instead of death. The lxx has
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:24 - -- Because ( kathoti ).
This old conjunction (kata , hoti ) occurs in the N.T. only in Luke’ s writings.
Because (
This old conjunction (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:24 - -- That he should be holden ( krateisthai auton ).
Infinitive present passive with accusative of general reference and subject of ēn adunaton . The fi...
That he should be holden (
Infinitive present passive with accusative of general reference and subject of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:25 - -- Concerning him ( eis auton ).
Peter interprets Psa 16:8-11 as written by David and with reference to the Messiah. There is but one speaker in this Ps...
Concerning him (
Peter interprets Psa 16:8-11 as written by David and with reference to the Messiah. There is but one speaker in this Psalm and both Peter here and Paul in Act 13:36 make it the Messiah. David is giving his own experience which is typical of the Messiah (Knowling).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:25 - -- I beheld ( proorōmēn ).
Imperfect middle without augment of prooraō , common verb, but only twice in the N.T., to see beforehand (Act 21:29) or...
I beheld (
Imperfect middle without augment of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:25 - -- On my right hand ( ek dexin mou ).
The Lord Jehovah like a defender or advocate stands at David’ s right hand as in trials in court (Psa 109:31)...
On my right hand (
The Lord Jehovah like a defender or advocate stands at David’ s right hand as in trials in court (Psa 109:31).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:25 - -- Moved ( saleuthō ).
First aorist passive subjunctive of saleuō , to shake like an earthquake.
Moved (
First aorist passive subjunctive of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:26 - -- Was glad ( ēuphranthē ).
First aorist (timeless here like the Hebrew perfect) passive indicative of euphrainō (cf. Luk 15:32). Timeless also ...
Was glad (
First aorist (timeless here like the Hebrew perfect) passive indicative of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:26 - -- Shall dwell ( kataskēnōsei ).
Shall tabernacle, pitch a tent, make one’ s abode (cf. Mat 13:32). See note on Mat 8:20 about kataskēnōsei...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
In hope (
On hope, the hope of the resurrection.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:27 - -- In Hades ( eis Hāidēn ).
Hades is the unseen world, Hebrew Sheol, but here it is viewed as death itself "considered as a rapacious destroyer"(Hac...
In Hades (
Hades is the unseen world, Hebrew Sheol, but here it is viewed as death itself "considered as a rapacious destroyer"(Hackett). It does not mean the place of punishment, though both heaven and the place of torment are in Hades (Luk 16:23). "Death and Hades are strictly parallel terms: he who is dead is in Hades"(Page). The use of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Thy Holy One (
Peter applies these words to the Messiah.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:27 - -- Corruption ( diaphthoran ).
The word can mean destruction or putrefaction from diaphtheirō , old word, but in N.T. only here and Act 13:34-37. The ...
Corruption (
The word can mean destruction or putrefaction from
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:28 - -- The ways of life ( hodous zōēs ).
Though dead God will show him the ways back to life.
The ways of life (
Though dead God will show him the ways back to life.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:29 - -- I may say ( exon eipein ).
Supply estin before exon , periphrastic present indicative of exeimi , to allow, permit. The Authorized Version has "Let...
I may say (
Supply
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:29 - -- Freely ( meta parrēsias ).
Telling it all (pan , rhēsia from eipon , to speak), with fulness, with boldness. Luke is fond of the phrase (as in...
Freely (
Telling it all (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:29 - -- The patriarch ( tou patriarchou ).
Transliteration of the word, from patria , family, and archō , to rule, the founder of a family. Late word in lx...
The patriarch (
Transliteration of the word, from
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:29 - -- Was buried ( etaphē ).
Second aorist passive indicative of thaptō . His tomb was on Matthew. Zion where most of the kings were buried. The tomb w...
Was buried (
Second aorist passive indicative of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:31 - -- Foreseeing ( proidōn ).
Second aorist active participle. Did it as a prophet.
Foreseeing (
Second aorist active participle. Did it as a prophet.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:31 - -- Of the Christ ( tou Christou ).
Of the Messiah. See under Act 2:32. This is a definite statement by Peter that David knew that in Psa 16:1-11 he was ...
Of the Christ (
Of the Messiah. See under Act 2:32. This is a definite statement by Peter that David knew that in Psa 16:1-11 he was describing the resurrection of the Messiah.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:32 - -- This Jesus ( touton ton Iēsoun ).
Many of the name "Jesus,"but he means the one already called "the Nazarene"(Act 2:22) and foretold as the Messiah...
This Jesus (
Many of the name "Jesus,"but he means the one already called "the Nazarene"(Act 2:22) and foretold as the Messiah in Psa 16:1-11 and raised from the dead by God in proof that he is the Messiah (Act 2:24, Act 2:32), "this Jesus whom ye crucified"(Act 2:36). Other terms used of him in the Acts are the Messiah, Act 2:31, the one whom God "anointed"(Act 10:38), as in Joh 1:41, Jesus Christ (Act 9:34). In Act 2:36 God made this Jesus Messiah, in Act 3:20 the Messiah Jesus, in Act 17:3 Jesus is the Messiah, in Act 18:5 the Messiah is Jesus, in Act 24:24 Christ Jesus.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:32 - -- Whereof ( hou ).
Or "of whom."Either makes sense and both are true. Peter claims the whole 120 as personal witnesses to the fact of the Resurrection ...
Whereof (
Or "of whom."Either makes sense and both are true. Peter claims the whole 120 as personal witnesses to the fact of the Resurrection of Jesus from the dead and they are all present as Peter calls them to witness on the point. In Galilee over 500 had seen the Risen Christ at one time (1Co 15:6) most of whom were still living when Paul wrote. Thus the direct evidence for the resurrection of Jesus piles up in cumulative force.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:33 - -- By the right hand of God ( tēi dexiāi tou theou ).
This translation makes it the instrumental case. The margin has it "at"instead of "by,"that is...
By the right hand of God (
This translation makes it the instrumental case. The margin has it "at"instead of "by,"that is the locative case. And it will make sense in the true dative case, "to the right hand of God."These three cases came to have the same form in Greek. Rom 8:24 furnishes another illustration of like ambiguity (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:33 - -- Exalted ( hupsōtheis ).
First aorist passive participle of hupsoō , to lift up. Here both the literal and tropical sense occurs. Cf. Joh 12:32.
Exalted (
First aorist passive participle of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:33 - -- The promise of the Holy Spirit ( tēn epaggelian tou pneumatos tou hagiou ).
The promise mentioned in Act 1:4 and now come true, consisting in the H...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:33 - -- He hath poured forth ( execheen ).
Aorist active indicative of ekcheō the verb used by Joel and quoted by Peter already in Act 2:17, Act 2:18. Je...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:33 - -- This which ye see and hear ( touto ho humeis kai blepete kai akouete ).
This includes the sound like the rushing wind, the tongues like fire on each ...
This which ye see and hear (
This includes the sound like the rushing wind, the tongues like fire on each of them, the different languages spoken by the 120. "The proof was before their eyes in this new energy from heaven"(Furneaux), a culminating demonstration that Jesus was the Messiah.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:34 - -- Ascended not ( ou̇̇anebē ).
It is more emphatic than that: For not David ascended into the heavens. Peter quotes Psa 110:1 as proof. No passage i...
Ascended not (
It is more emphatic than that: For not David ascended into the heavens. Peter quotes Psa 110:1 as proof. No passage in the O.T. is so constantly quoted as Messianic as this. "St. Peter does not demand belief upon his own assertion, but he again appeals to the Scriptures, and to words which could not have received a fulfilment in the case of David"(Knowling).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:34 - -- Sit thou ( kathou ).
Late Koiné[28928]š form for earlier kathēso , present middle imperative second singular of kathēmai .
Sit thou (
Late Koiné[28928]š form for earlier
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:35 - -- Till I make ( heōs an thō ).
Second aorist active subjunctive of tithēmi with an after heōs for the future, a common Greek idiom. This ...
Till I make (
Second aorist active subjunctive of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:35 - -- Therefore assuredly ( Asphalōs oun ).
Assuredly therefore, without any slip or trip (asphalēs from a privative and sphallō , to trip, to sl...
Therefore assuredly (
Assuredly therefore, without any slip or trip (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:37 - -- They were pricked in their heart ( katenugēsan tēn kardian ).
Second aorist indicative of katanussō , a rare verb (lxx) to pierce, to sting sha...
They were pricked in their heart (
Second aorist indicative of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:37 - -- What shall we do? ( Ti poiēsōmen ).
Deliberative subjunctive first aorist active. The sermon went home, they felt the sting of Peter’ s word...
What shall we do? (
Deliberative subjunctive first aorist active. The sermon went home, they felt the sting of Peter’ s words, compunction (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:38 - -- Repent ye ( metanoēsate ).
First aorist (ingressive) active imperative. Change your mind and your life. Turn right about and do it now. You crucif...
Repent ye (
First aorist (ingressive) active imperative. Change your mind and your life. Turn right about and do it now. You crucified this Jesus. Now crown him in your hearts as Lord and Christ. This first.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:38 - -- And be baptized every one of you ( kai baptisthētō hekastos hūmōn ).
Rather, "And let each one of you be baptized."Change of number from plur...
And be baptized every one of you (
Rather, "And let each one of you be baptized."Change of number from plural to singular and of person from second to third. This change marks a break in the thought here that the English translation does not preserve. The first thing to do is make a radical and complete change of heart and life. Then let each one be baptized after this change has taken place, and the act of baptism be performed "in the name of Jesus Christ"(
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:38 - -- Unto the remission of your sins ( eis aphesin tōn hamartiōn hūmōn ).
This phrase is the subject of endless controversy as men look at it from...
Unto the remission of your sins (
This phrase is the subject of endless controversy as men look at it from the standpoint of sacramental or of evangelical theology. In themselves the words can express aim or purpose for that use of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:38 - -- The gift of the Holy Ghost ( tēn dōrean tou hagiou pneumatos ).
The gift consists (Act 8:17) in the Holy Spirit (genitive of identification).
The gift of the Holy Ghost (
The gift consists (Act 8:17) in the Holy Spirit (genitive of identification).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:39 - -- The promise ( hē epaggelia ).
The promise made by Jesus (Act 1:4) and foretold by Joel (Act 2:18).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:39 - -- To you ( humin ).
You Jews. To your descendants, sons and daughters of Act 2:17.
To you (
You Jews. To your descendants, sons and daughters of Act 2:17.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:39 - -- To all that are afar off ( pāsin tois eis makran . The horizon widens and includes the Gentiles. Those "afar off"from the Jews were the heathen (Isa...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:39 - -- Shall call ( an proskalesētai ).
First aorist middle subjunctive with an in an indefinite relative clause, a perfectly regular construction. The ...
Shall call (
First aorist middle subjunctive with
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:40 - -- With many other words ( heterois logois pleiosin ).
Instrumental case. Not necessarily "different"(heterois ), but "further,"showing that Luke does ...
With many other words (
Instrumental case. Not necessarily "different"(
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:40 - -- He testified ( diemarturato ).
First aorist middle of diamarturomai , old verb, to make solemn attestation or call to witness (perfective use of dia ...
He testified (
First aorist middle of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
And exhorted (
Imperfect active, kept on exhorting.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:40 - -- Save yourselves ( sōthēte ).
First aorist passive of sōzō . Literally, Be ye saved.
Save yourselves (
First aorist passive of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:40 - -- Crooked ( skolias ).
Old word, opposite of orthos , straight. Pravus the opposite of rectus , a perversity for turning off from the truth. Cf. L...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:41 - -- They then ( Hoi men oun ).
A common phrase in Acts either without antithesis as in Act 1:6; Act 5:41; Act 8:4, Act 8:25; Act 9:31; Act 11:19; Act 16:...
They then (
A common phrase in Acts either without antithesis as in Act 1:6; Act 5:41; Act 8:4, Act 8:25; Act 9:31; Act 11:19; Act 16:5; or with it as here, Act 8:25; Act 13:4; Act 14:3; Act 17:17; Act 23:31; Act 25:4.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:41 - -- Were baptized ( ebaptisthēsan ).
First aorist passive indicative, constative aorist. Note that only those who had already received the word and wer...
Were baptized (
First aorist passive indicative, constative aorist. Note that only those who had already received the word and were converted were baptized.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:41 - -- There were added ( prosetethēsan ).
First aorist passive indicative of prostithēmi , old verb to add, to join to. Luke means that the 3,000 were ...
There were added (
First aorist passive indicative of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:42 - -- They continued steadfastly ( ēsan proskarturountes ).
Periphrastic active imperfect of proskartureō as in Act 1:14 (same participle in Act 2:46...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:42 - -- Fellowship ( Koinōniāi ).
Old word from Koinōnos (partner, sharer in common interest) and this from Koinos what is common to all. This part...
Fellowship (
Old word from
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:42 - -- The breaking of bread ( tēi klasei tou artou ).
The word klasis is an old word, but used only by Luke in the N.T. (Luk 24:35; Act 2:42), though t...
The breaking of bread (
The word
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:42 - -- The prayers ( tais proseuchais ).
Services where they prayed as in Act 1:14, in the temple (Act 3:1), in their homes (Act 4:23).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Came (
Imperfect middle, kept on coming.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:43 - -- Were done ( egineto ).
Same tense. Awe kept on coming on all and signs and wonders kept on coming through the apostles. The two things went on pari p...
Were done (
Same tense. Awe kept on coming on all and signs and wonders kept on coming through the apostles. The two things went on
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:44 - -- Were together ( ēsan epi to auto ).
Some MSS. ēsan kai (were and). But they were together in the same place as in Act 2:1.
Were together (
Some MSS.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:44 - -- And had ( kai eichon ).
Imperfect active, kept on having, a habit in the present emergency.
And had (
Imperfect active, kept on having, a habit in the present emergency.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:44 - -- Common ( Koinéa ).
It was not actual communism, but they held all their property ready for use for the common good as it was needed (Act 4:32). This...
Common (
It was not actual communism, but they held all their property ready for use for the common good as it was needed (Act 4:32). This situation appears nowhere else except in Jerusalem and was evidently due to special conditions there which did not survive permanently. Later Paul will take a special collection for the poor saints in Jerusalem.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:45 - -- Sold ( epipraskon ).
Imperfect active, a habit or custom from time to time. Old and common verb, pipraskō .
Sold (
Imperfect active, a habit or custom from time to time. Old and common verb,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:45 - -- Parted ( diemerizon ).
Imperfect again of diamerizō , old verb for dividing or distributing between (dia ) people.
Parted (
Imperfect again of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:45 - -- According as any man had need ( kathoti an tis chreian eichen ).
Regular Greek idiom for comparative clause with an and imperfect indicative corres...
According as any man had need (
Regular Greek idiom for comparative clause with
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:46 - -- With one accord in the temple ( homothumadon en tōi hierōi ).
See note on Act 1:14 for homothumadon . They were still worshipping in the temple f...
With one accord in the temple (
See note on Act 1:14 for
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:46 - -- They did take their food ( metelambanon trophēs ).
Imperfect tense again and clearly referring to the regular meals at home. Does it refer also to ...
They did take their food (
Imperfect tense again and clearly referring to the regular meals at home. Does it refer also to the possible
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:47 - -- Added ( prosetithei ).
Imperfect active, kept on adding. If the Lord only always "added"those who join our churches. Note Act 2:41where same verb is ...
Added (
Imperfect active, kept on adding. If the Lord only always "added"those who join our churches. Note Act 2:41where same verb is used of the 3,000.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:47 - -- To them ( epi to auto ).
Literally, "together."Why not leave it so? "To the church"(tēi ekklēsiāi ) is not genuine. Codex Bezae has "in the ch...
To them (
Literally, "together."Why not leave it so? "To the church"(
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Robertson: Act 2:47 - -- Those that were being saved ( tous sōzomenous ).
Present passive participle. Probably for repetition like the imperfect prosetithei . Better transl...
Those that were being saved (
Present passive participle. Probably for repetition like the imperfect
Vincent -> Act 2:13; Act 2:13; Act 2:13; Act 2:14; Act 2:14; Act 2:14; Act 2:14; Act 2:15; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:19; Act 2:19; Act 2:19; Act 2:20; Act 2:22; Act 2:22; Act 2:23; Act 2:23; Act 2:23; Act 2:23; Act 2:23; Act 2:24; Act 2:25; Act 2:25; Act 2:26; Act 2:26; Act 2:26; Act 2:27; Act 2:27; Act 2:29; Act 2:29; Act 2:29; Act 2:29; Act 2:29; Act 2:30; Act 2:34; Act 2:35; Act 2:36; Act 2:37; Act 2:38; Act 2:38; Act 2:38; Act 2:39; Act 2:39; Act 2:40; Act 2:40; Act 2:40; Act 2:40; Act 2:42; Act 2:42; Act 2:42; Act 2:42; Act 2:42; Act 2:43; Act 2:44; Act 2:45; Act 2:45; Act 2:46; Act 2:46; Act 2:46; Act 2:46; Act 2:47; Act 2:47; Act 2:47
Vincent: Act 2:13 - -- Others ( ἕτεροι )
Of a different class. The first who commented on the wonder did so curiously, but with no prejudice. Those who no...
Others (
Of a different class. The first who commented on the wonder did so curiously, but with no prejudice. Those who now spoke did so in a hostile spirit. See on Act 2:4.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:13 - -- Mocking ( διαχλευάζοντες ; so the best texts )
From χλεύη , a joke. Only here in New Testament.
Mocking (
From
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
New wine (
Lit., " sweet wine." Of course intoxicating.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:14 - -- Said ( ἀπεφθέγξατο )
See on Act 2:4. Better, Rev., spake forth . " This most solemn, earnest, yet sober speech" (Bengel).
Said (
See on Act 2:4. Better, Rev., spake forth . " This most solemn, earnest, yet sober speech" (Bengel).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:14 - -- Hearken ( ἐνωτίσασθε )
Only here in New Testament. From ἐν , in; and οὖς the ear. Rev., give ear.
Hearken (
Only here in New Testament. From
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
All flesh
Without distinction of age, sex, or condition.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:17 - -- Dream dreams ( ἐνύπνια ἐνυπνιασθήσονται )
The best texts read ἐνυπνίοις , with dreams. The verb occu...
Dream dreams (
The best texts read
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
I will shew (
Lit., I will give.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:20 - -- That great and notable day of the Lord come
The Rev. heightens the emphasis by following the Greek order, the day of the Lord, that great and no...
That great and notable day of the Lord come
The Rev. heightens the emphasis by following the Greek order, the day of the Lord, that great and notable day. Notable (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:22 - -- Approved ( ἀποδεδειγμένον )
The verb means to point out or shew forth. Shewn to be that which he claimed to be.
Approved (
The verb means to point out or shew forth. Shewn to be that which he claimed to be.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:22 - -- Miracles ( δυνάμεσι )
Better, Rev., mighty works . Lit., powers . See on Mat 11:20.
Miracles (
Better, Rev., mighty works . Lit., powers . See on Mat 11:20.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Being delivered (
An adjective: given forth , betrayed.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wicked hands
The best texts read by the hand of lawless
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:23 - -- Crucified ( προσπήξαντες )
Only here in New Testament. The verb simply means to affix to or on anything. The idea of the cross is...
Crucified (
Only here in New Testament. The verb simply means to affix to or on anything. The idea of the cross is left to be supplied.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:23 - -- Have slain ( ἀνείλετε )
See on Luk 23:32. Rev., rendering the aorist more closely, did slay.
Have slain (
See on Luk 23:32. Rev., rendering the aorist more closely, did slay.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:24 - -- Pains ( ὠδῖνας )
The meaning is disputed. Some claim that Peter followed the Septuagint mistranslation of Psa 18:5, where the Hebrew wo...
Pains (
The meaning is disputed. Some claim that Peter followed the Septuagint mistranslation of Psa 18:5, where the Hebrew word for snares is rendered by the word used here, pains ; and that, therefore, it should be rendered snares of death; the figure being that of escape from the snare of a huntsman. Others suppose that death is represented in travail, the birth-pangs ceasing with the delivery; i.e., the resurrection. This seems to be far-fetched, though it is true that in classical Greek the word is used commonly of birth-throes. It is better, perhaps, on the whole, to take the expression in the sense of the A. V., and to make the pains of death stand for death generally.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:25 - -- I foresaw ( προωρώμην )
Not to see beforehand, but to see before one's self, as in Psa 16:8.
I foresaw (
Not to see beforehand, but to see before one's self, as in Psa 16:8.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:25 - -- I should not be moved ( μὴ σαλευθῶ )
Or be shaken. Generally so rendered in the New Testament. See Mat 11:7; Mat 24:29; Heb 12:26,...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:26 - -- Shall rest ( κατασκηνώσει )
See on nests , Mat 8:20. Better, as Rev., dwell. Lit., dwell in a tent or tabernacle. Rendered ...
Shall rest (
See on nests , Mat 8:20. Better, as Rev., dwell. Lit., dwell in a tent or tabernacle. Rendered lodge, Mat 13:32; Mar 4:32; Luk 13:19. It is a beautiful metaphor. My flesh shall encamp on hope ; pitch its tent there to rest through the night of death, until the morning of resurrection.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:26 - -- In hope ( ἐπ ' ἐλπίδι )
Lit., on hope: resting on the hope of resurrection; his body being poetically conceived as hoping.
In hope (
Lit., on hope: resting on the hope of resurrection; his body being poetically conceived as hoping.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Leave (
Lit., leave behind.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:29 - -- Let me speak ( ἐξὸν εἰπεῖν )
Lit., it is permitted me. Rev., I may . It is allowable for him to speak, because the facts are...
Let me speak (
Lit., it is permitted me. Rev., I may . It is allowable for him to speak, because the facts are notorious.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:29 - -- Freely ( μετὰ παῤῥησίας )
Lit., with freedom. The latter word from πᾶν , all, and ῥῆσις , speech; speaking...
Freely (
Lit., with freedom. The latter word from
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:29 - -- The patriarch ( πατριάρχου )
From ἄρχω , to begin, and πατριά , a pedigree. Applied to David as the father of the r...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:29 - -- He is dead and buried ( ἐτελεύτησε καὶ ἐτάφη )
Aorists, denoting what occurred at a definite past time. Rev., rightly...
He is dead and buried (
Aorists, denoting what occurred at a definite past time. Rev., rightly, he both died and was buried.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:29 - -- His sepulchre is with us
Or among us (ἐν ἡμῖν ). On Mount Zion, where most of the Jewish kings were interred in the same tomb.
His sepulchre is with us
Or among us (
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:30 - -- According to the flesh, he would raise up Christ
The best texts omit. Render as Rev., he would set one upon his throne.
According to the flesh, he would raise up Christ
The best texts omit. Render as Rev., he would set one upon his throne.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Is not ascended (
Aorist, did not ascend.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:36 - -- Assuredly ( ἀσφαλῶς )
From ἀ , not, and σφάλλω , to cause to fall. Hence, firmly , steadfastly.
Assuredly (
From
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:37 - -- They were pricked ( κατενύγησαν )
Only here in New Testament. The word does not occur in profane Greek. It is found in the Septuagin...
They were pricked (
Only here in New Testament. The word does not occur in profane Greek. It is found in the Septuagint, as Genesis 34:7, of the grief of the sons of Jacob at the dishonor of Dinah. See, also, Psa 109:16(Sept. 108) Psa 109:16 : " broken in heart." The kindred noun
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:39 - -- Afar off ( εἰς μακρὰν )
Lit., unto a long way. Referring probably to the Gentiles, who are described by this phrase both in the Ol...
Afar off (
Lit., unto a long way. Referring probably to the Gentiles, who are described by this phrase both in the Old and New Testaments. See Zec 6:15; Eph 2:11-13. Peter knew the fact that the Gentiles were to be received into the Church, but not the mode . He expected they would become Christians through the medium of the Jewish religion. It was already revealed in the Old Testament that they should be received, and Christ himself had commanded the apostles to preach to all nations.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:39 - -- Shall call ( προσκαλέσηται )
Rev. gives the force of πρός , to: " shall call unto him. "
Shall call (
Rev. gives the force of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:40 - -- Did he testify ( διεμαρτύρετο )
The preposition διά gives the force of solemnly, earnestly.
Did he testify (
The preposition
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Save yourselves (
More strictly, be ye saved.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:40 - -- Untoward ( σκολιᾶς )
Lit., crooked. Toward in earlier English meant docile, apt. The opposite is froward ( froward ) . So Shakesp...
Untoward (
Lit., crooked. Toward in earlier English meant docile, apt. The opposite is froward ( froward ) . So Shakespeare:
" 'Tis a good hearing when children are toward ,
But a harsh hearing when women are froward. "
Taming of the Shrew , v., 2.
" Spoken like a toward prince."
3 Henry VI., ii., 2.
Untoward, therefore, meant intractable, perverse. So Shakespeare:
" What means this scorn, thou most untoward knave ?"
K. John , i, 1.
" And if she be froward,
Then hast thou taught Hortensio to be untoward."
Taming of the Shrew , iv., 5.
Compare Deu 32:5.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Doctrine (
Better, teaching .
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:42 - -- Fellowship ( κοινωνίᾳ )
From κοινός , common. A relation between individuals which involves a common interest and a mutual, ...
Fellowship (
From
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:42 - -- Breaking ( κλάσει )
Used by Luke only, and only in the phrase breaking of bread. The kindred verb κλάζω or κλάω , to bre...
Breaking (
Used by Luke only, and only in the phrase breaking of bread. The kindred verb
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:42 - -- Prayers ( προσευχαῖς )
Always of prayer to God. Compare on δεήσεις , prayers, Luk 5:33; and besought, Luk 8:38.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:43 - -- Fear ( φόβος )
Not terror, but reverential awe: as Mar 4:41; Luk 7:16; 1Pe 1:17, etc.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Possessions (
Landed property.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Goods (
Possessions in general; movables.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:46 - -- From house to house ( κατ ' οἶκον )
Better, as Rev., at home, contrasted with in the temple. Compare Phm 1:2; Col 4:15; 1Co 16:...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:46 - -- Did eat their meat ( μετελάμβανον τροφῆς )
Rev., take their food. Partake would be better, giving the force of μετά...
Did eat their meat (
Rev., take their food. Partake would be better, giving the force of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:46 - -- Singleness ( ἀφελότητι )
Only here in New Testament. Derived from ἀ , not, and φελλεύς , stony ground. Hence of someth...
Singleness (
Only here in New Testament. Derived from
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Added (
Imperfect: kept adding.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Vincent: Act 2:47 - -- Such as should be saved ( τοὺς σωζομένους )
Lit., as Rev., those that were being saved. The rendering of the A. V. would requ...
Such as should be saved (
Lit., as Rev., those that were being saved. The rendering of the A. V. would require the verb to be in the future, whereas it is the present participle. Compare 1Co 1:18. Salvation is a thing of the present, as well as of the past and future. The verb is used in all these senses in the New Testament. Thus, we were saved (not are, as A. V.), Rom 8:24; shall or shalt be saved, Rom 10:9, Rom 10:13; ye are being saved, 1Co 15:2. " Godliness, righteousness, is life, is salvation. And it is hardly necessary to say that the divorce of morality and religion must be fostered and encouraged by failing to note this, and so laying the whole stress either on the past or on the future - on the first call, or on the final change. It is, therefore, important that the idea of salvation as a rescue from sin, through the knowledge of God in Christ, and therefore a progressive condition, a present state, should not be obscured, and we can but regret such a translation as Act 2:47, 'The Lord added to the church daily such as should be saved,' where the Greek implies a different idea" (Lightfoot, " On a Fresh Revision of the New Testament" ).
Wesley -> Act 2:13; Act 2:13; Act 2:14; Act 2:14; Act 2:15; Act 2:16; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:18; Act 2:19; Act 2:19; Act 2:19; Act 2:19; Act 2:19; Act 2:20; Act 2:21; Act 2:23; Act 2:24; Act 2:24; Act 2:25; Act 2:27; Act 2:28; Act 2:28; Act 2:29; Act 2:30; Act 2:32; Act 2:33; Act 2:34; Act 2:35; Act 2:36; Act 2:37; Act 2:38; Act 2:38; Act 2:40; Act 2:40; Act 2:41; Act 2:42; Act 2:43; Act 2:45; Act 2:45; Act 2:46; Act 2:46; Act 2:47
Wesley: Act 2:13 - -- The world begins with mocking, thence proceeds to cavilling, Act 4:7; to threats, Act 4:17; to imprisoning, Act 5:18; blows, Act 5:40; to slaughter, A...
The world begins with mocking, thence proceeds to cavilling, Act 4:7; to threats, Act 4:17; to imprisoning, Act 5:18; blows, Act 5:40; to slaughter, Act 7:58. These mockers appear to have been some of the natives of Judea, and inhabitants of Jerusalem, (who understood only the dialect of the country,) by the apostle's immediately directing his discourse to them in the next verse.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:13 - -- So the Greek word properly signifies. There was no new wine so early in the year as pentecost. Thus natural men are wont to ascribe supernatural thing...
So the Greek word properly signifies. There was no new wine so early in the year as pentecost. Thus natural men are wont to ascribe supernatural things to mere natural causes; and many times as impudently and unskilfully as in the present case.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:14 - -- All the gestures, all the words of Peter, show the utmost sobriety; lifted up his voice - With cheerfulness and boldness; and said to them - This disc...
All the gestures, all the words of Peter, show the utmost sobriety; lifted up his voice - With cheerfulness and boldness; and said to them - This discourse has three parts; each of which, Act 2:14, Act 2:22, Act 2:29, begins with the same appellation, men: only to the last part he prefixes with more familiarity the additional word brethren.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:14 - -- That is, ye that are born in Judea. St. Peter spoke in Hebrew, which they all understood.
That is, ye that are born in Judea. St. Peter spoke in Hebrew, which they all understood.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:15 - -- That is, nine in the morning. And on the solemn festivals the Jews rarely ate or drank any thing till noon.
That is, nine in the morning. And on the solemn festivals the Jews rarely ate or drank any thing till noon.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:17 - -- The times of the Messiah are frequently called the last days, the Gospel being the last dispensation of Divine grace.
The times of the Messiah are frequently called the last days, the Gospel being the last dispensation of Divine grace.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:17 - -- Not on the day of pentecost only, upon all flesh - On persons of every age, sex, and rank.
Not on the day of pentecost only, upon all flesh - On persons of every age, sex, and rank.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:17 - -- In young men the outward sense, are most vigorous, and the bodily strength is entire, whereby they are best qualified to sustain the shock which usual...
In young men the outward sense, are most vigorous, and the bodily strength is entire, whereby they are best qualified to sustain the shock which usually attends the visions of God. In old men the internal senses are most vigorous, suited to divine dreams. Not that the old are wholly excluded from the former, nor the young from the latter.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
On those who are literally in a state of servitude.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:19 - -- Great revelations of grace are usually attended with great judgments on those who reject it.
Great revelations of grace are usually attended with great judgments on those who reject it.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:19 - -- Described in this verse. Such signs were those mentioned, Act 2:22, before the passion of Christ; which are so mentioned as to include also those at t...
Described in this verse. Such signs were those mentioned, Act 2:22, before the passion of Christ; which are so mentioned as to include also those at the very time of the passion and resurrection, at the destruction of Jerusalem, and at the end of the world. Terrible indeed were those prodigies in particular which preceded the destruction of Jerusalem: such as the flaming sword hanging over the city, and the fiery comet pointing down upon it for a year; the light that shone upon the temple and the altar in the night, as if it had been noon - day; the opening of the great and heavy gate of the temple without hands; the voice heard from the most holy place, Let us depart hence; the admonition of Jesus the son of Ananus, crying for seven years together, Wo, wo, wo; the vision of contending armies in the air, and of entrenchments thrown up against a city there represented; the terrible thunders and lightnings, and dreadful earthquakes, which every one considered as portending some great evil: all which, through the singular providence of God, are particularly recorded by Josephus.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Burnings of houses and towns, involving all in clouds of smoke.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:20 - -- A bloody colour: before the day of the Lord - Eminently the last day; though not excluding any other day or season, wherein the Lord shall manifest hi...
A bloody colour: before the day of the Lord - Eminently the last day; though not excluding any other day or season, wherein the Lord shall manifest his glory, in taking vengeance of his adversaries.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:21 - -- whosoever shall call on the name of the Lord - This expression implies the whole of religion, and particularly prayer uttered in faith; shall be saved...
whosoever shall call on the name of the Lord - This expression implies the whole of religion, and particularly prayer uttered in faith; shall be saved - From all those plagues; from sin and hell.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:23 - -- The apostle here anticipates an objection, Why did God suffer such a person to be so treated? Did he not know what wicked men intended to do? And had ...
The apostle here anticipates an objection, Why did God suffer such a person to be so treated? Did he not know what wicked men intended to do? And had he not power to prevent it? Yea. He knew all that those wicked men intended to do. And he had power to blast all their designs in a moment. But he did not exert that power, because he so loved the world! Because it was the determined counsel of his love, to redeem mankind from eternal death, by the death of his only - begotten Son.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
The word properly means, the pains of a woman in travail.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Because the Scripture must needs be fulfilled.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:27 - -- The invisible world. But it does not appear, that ever our Lord went into hell. His soul, when it was separated from the body, did not go thither, but...
The invisible world. But it does not appear, that ever our Lord went into hell. His soul, when it was separated from the body, did not go thither, but to paradise, Luk 23:43. The meaning is, Thou wilt not leave my soul in its separate state, nor suffer my body to be corrupted.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
That is, Thou hast raised me from the dead.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:32 - -- St. Peter argues thus: It is plain, David did not speak this of himself. Therefore he spake of Christ's rising. But how does that promise of a kingdom...
St. Peter argues thus: It is plain, David did not speak this of himself. Therefore he spake of Christ's rising. But how does that promise of a kingdom imply his resurrection? Because he did not receive it before he died, and because his kingdom was to endure for ever, 2Sa 7:13.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:33 - -- By the right hand; that is, the mighty power of God. Our Lord was exalted at his ascension to God's right hand in heaven.
By the right hand; that is, the mighty power of God. Our Lord was exalted at his ascension to God's right hand in heaven.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:34 - -- In this and the following verse is an allusion to two ancient customs; one, to the highest honour that used to be paid to persons by placing them on t...
In this and the following verse is an allusion to two ancient customs; one, to the highest honour that used to be paid to persons by placing them on the right hand, as Solomon did Bathsheba, when sitting on his throne, 1Ki 2:19; and the other, to the custom of conquerors, who used to tread on the necks of their vanquished enemies, as a token of their entire victory and triumph over them.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:35 - -- This text is here quoted with the greatest address, as suggesting in the words of David, their great prophetic monarch, how certain their own ruin mus...
This text is here quoted with the greatest address, as suggesting in the words of David, their great prophetic monarch, how certain their own ruin must be, if they went on to oppose Christ. Psa 110:1.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:36 - -- Jesus, after his exaltation, is constantly meant by this word in the New Testament, unless sometimes where it occurs, in a text quoted from the Old Te...
Jesus, after his exaltation, is constantly meant by this word in the New Testament, unless sometimes where it occurs, in a text quoted from the Old Testament.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:38 - -- And hereby return to God: be baptized - Believing in the name of Jesus - And ye shall receive the gift of the Holy Ghost - See the three - one God cle...
And hereby return to God: be baptized - Believing in the name of Jesus - And ye shall receive the gift of the Holy Ghost - See the three - one God clearly proved. See Act 26:20. The gift of the Holy Ghost does not mean in this place the power of speaking with tongues. For the promise of this was not given to all that were afar off, in distant ages and nations. But rather the constant fruits of faith, even righteousness, and peace, and joy in the Holy Ghost.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:38 - -- (Whether they are Jews or Gentiles) by his word and by his Spirit: and who are not disobedient to the heavenly calling. But it is observable St. Peter...
(Whether they are Jews or Gentiles) by his word and by his Spirit: and who are not disobedient to the heavenly calling. But it is observable St. Peter did not yet understand the very words he spoke.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:40 - -- In such an accepted time we should add line upon line, and not leave off, till the thing is done.
In such an accepted time we should add line upon line, and not leave off, till the thing is done.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Many of whom were probably mocking still.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:42 - -- So their daily Church communion consisted in these four particulars: Hearing the word; Having all things common; Receiving the Lord's Supper; Prayer.
...
So their daily Church communion consisted in these four particulars: Hearing the word; Having all things common; Receiving the Lord's Supper; Prayer.
Ye diff'rent sects, who all declare, Lo here is Christ, and Christ is there; Your stronger proofs divinely give, And show me where the Christians live!
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:43 - -- Of those who did not join with them: whereby persecution was prevented, till it was needful for them.
Of those who did not join with them: whereby persecution was prevented, till it was needful for them.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Their lands and houses; and goods - Their movables.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:45 - -- To say the Christians did this only till the destruction of Jerusalem, is not true; for many did it long after. Not that there was any positive comman...
To say the Christians did this only till the destruction of Jerusalem, is not true; for many did it long after. Not that there was any positive command for so doing: it needed not; for love constrained them. It was a natural fruit of that love wherewith each member of the community loved every other as his own soul. And if the whole Christian Church had continued in this spirit, this usage must have continued through all ages. To affirm therefore that Christ did not design it should continue, is neither more nor less than to affirm, that Christ did not design this measure of love should continue. I see no proof of this.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:46 - -- breaking the bread - in the Lord's Supper, as did many Churches for some ages.
breaking the bread - in the Lord's Supper, as did many Churches for some ages.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Wesley: Act 2:46 - -- They carried the same happy and holy temper through all their common actions: eating and working with the same spirit wherewith they prayed and receiv...
They carried the same happy and holy temper through all their common actions: eating and working with the same spirit wherewith they prayed and received the Lord's Supper.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
From their sins: from the guilt and power of them.
JFB -> Act 2:14-21; Act 2:15; Act 2:15; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:19; Act 2:21; Act 2:22-28; Act 2:22-28; Act 2:23; Act 2:23; Act 2:24; Act 2:27; Act 2:27; Act 2:28; Act 2:28; Act 2:29-36; Act 2:36; Act 2:36; Act 2:36; Act 2:36; Act 2:36; Act 2:37-40; Act 2:37-40; Act 2:38; Act 2:38; Act 2:39; Act 2:39; Act 2:40; Act 2:40; Act 2:41-47; Act 2:41-47; Act 2:42; Act 2:42; Act 2:42; Act 2:42; Act 2:42; Act 2:43; Act 2:44; Act 2:46; Act 2:46; Act 2:46; Act 2:47; Act 2:47; Act 2:47; Act 2:47; Act 2:47; Act 2:47; Act 2:47
In advance, perhaps, of the rest.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Meaning, not the Eleven, but the body of the disciples.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:17 - -- Meaning, the days of the Messiah (Isa 2:2); as closing all preparatory arrangements, and constituting the final dispensation of God's kingdom on earth...
Meaning, the days of the Messiah (Isa 2:2); as closing all preparatory arrangements, and constituting the final dispensation of God's kingdom on earth.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
In contrast with the mere drops of all preceding time.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Hitherto confined to the seed of Abraham.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Without distinction of sex, age, or rank.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:17 - -- This is a mere accommodation to the ways in which the Spirit operated under the ancient economy, when the prediction was delivered; for in the New Tes...
This is a mere accommodation to the ways in which the Spirit operated under the ancient economy, when the prediction was delivered; for in the New Testament, visions and dreams are rather the exception than the rule.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:19 - -- Referring to the signs which were to precede the destruction of Jerusalem (see on Luk 21:25-28).
Referring to the signs which were to precede the destruction of Jerusalem (see on Luk 21:25-28).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:21 - -- This points to the permanent establishment of the economy of salvation, which followed on the breaking up of the Jewish state.
This points to the permanent establishment of the economy of salvation, which followed on the breaking up of the Jewish state.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Rather, "authenticated," "proved," or "demonstrated to be from God."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:22-28 - -- This is not a low view of our Lord's miracles, as has been alleged, nor inconsistent with Joh 2:11, but is in strict accordance with His progress from...
This is not a low view of our Lord's miracles, as has been alleged, nor inconsistent with Joh 2:11, but is in strict accordance with His progress from humiliation to glory, and with His own words in Joh 5:19. This view of Christ is here dwelt on to exhibit to the Jews the whole course of Jesus of Nazareth as the ordinance and doing of the God of Israel [ALFORD].
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
God's fixed plan and perfect foresight of all the steps involved in it.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:23 - -- How strikingly is the criminality of Christ's murderers here presented in harmony with the eternal purpose to surrender Him into their hands!
How strikingly is the criminality of Christ's murderers here presented in harmony with the eternal purpose to surrender Him into their hands!
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:24 - -- Glorious saying! It was indeed impossible that "the Living One" should remain "among the dead" (Luk 24:5); but here, the impossibility seems to refer ...
Glorious saying! It was indeed impossible that "the Living One" should remain "among the dead" (Luk 24:5); but here, the impossibility seems to refer to the prophetic assurance that He should not see corruption.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:28 - -- That is, in glory; as is plain from the whole connection and the actual words of the sixteenth Psalm.
That is, in glory; as is plain from the whole connection and the actual words of the sixteenth Psalm.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:29-36 - -- Peter, full of the Holy Ghost, sees in this sixteenth Psalm, one Holy Man, whose life of high devotedness and lofty spirituality is crowned with the a...
Peter, full of the Holy Ghost, sees in this sixteenth Psalm, one Holy Man, whose life of high devotedness and lofty spirituality is crowned with the assurance, that though He taste of death, He shall rise again without seeing corruption, and be admitted to the bliss of God's immediate presence. Now as this was palpably untrue of David, it could be meant only of One other, even of Him whom David was taught to expect as the final Occupant of the throne of Israel. (Those, therefore, and they are many, who take David himself to be the subject of this Psalm, and the words quoted to refer to Christ only in a more eminent sense, nullify the whole argument of the apostle). The Psalm is then affirmed to have had its only proper fulfilment in JESUS, of whose resurrection and ascension they were witnesses, while the glorious effusion of the Spirit by the hand of the ascended One, setting an infallible seal upon all, was even then witnessed by the thousands who stood listening to Him. A further illustration of Messiah's ascension and session at God's right hand is drawn from Psa 110:1, in which David cannot be thought to speak of himself, seeing he is still in his grave.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:36 - -- For in this first discourse the appeal is formally made to the whole house of Israel, as the then existing Kingdom of God.
For in this first discourse the appeal is formally made to the whole house of Israel, as the then existing Kingdom of God.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:36 - -- By indisputable facts, fulfilled predictions, and the seal of the Holy Ghost set upon all.
By indisputable facts, fulfilled predictions, and the seal of the Holy Ghost set upon all.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:36 - -- For Peter's object was to show them that, instead of interfering with the arrangements of the God of Israel, these events were His own high movements.
For Peter's object was to show them that, instead of interfering with the arrangements of the God of Israel, these events were His own high movements.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:36 - -- "The sting is at the close" [BENGEL]. To prove to them merely that Jesus was the Messiah might have left them all unchanged in heart. But to convince ...
"The sting is at the close" [BENGEL]. To prove to them merely that Jesus was the Messiah might have left them all unchanged in heart. But to convince them that He whom they had crucified had been by the right hand of God exalted, and constituted the "LORD" whom David in spirit adored, to whom every knee shall bow, and the CHRIST of God, was to bring them to "look on Him whom they had pierced and mourn for Him."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:37-40 - -- The begun fulfilment of Zec 12:10, whose full accomplishment is reserved for the day when "all Israel shall be saved" (see on Rom 11:26).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:37-40 - -- This is that beautiful spirit of genuine compunction and childlike docility, which, discovering its whole past career to have been one frightful mista...
This is that beautiful spirit of genuine compunction and childlike docility, which, discovering its whole past career to have been one frightful mistake, seeks only to be set right for the future, be the change involved and the sacrifices required what they may. So Saul of Tarsus (Act 9:6).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:38 - -- The word denotes change of mind, and here includes the reception of the Gospel as the proper issue of that revolution of mind which they were then und...
The word denotes change of mind, and here includes the reception of the Gospel as the proper issue of that revolution of mind which they were then undergoing.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:39 - -- Of the Holy Ghost, through the risen Saviour, as the grand blessing of the new covenant.
Of the Holy Ghost, through the risen Saviour, as the grand blessing of the new covenant.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:40 - -- Thus we have here but a summary of Peter's discourse; though from the next words it would seem that only the more practical parts, the home appeals, a...
Thus we have here but a summary of Peter's discourse; though from the next words it would seem that only the more practical parts, the home appeals, are omitted.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:40 - -- As if Peter already foresaw the hopeless impenitence of the nation at large, and would have his hearers hasten in for themselves and secure their own ...
As if Peter already foresaw the hopeless impenitence of the nation at large, and would have his hearers hasten in for themselves and secure their own salvation.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:41-47 - -- "It is difficult to say how three thousand could be baptized in one day, according to the old practice of a complete submersion; and the more as in Je...
"It is difficult to say how three thousand could be baptized in one day, according to the old practice of a complete submersion; and the more as in Jerusalem there was no water at hand except Kidron and a few pools. The difficulty can only be removed by supposing that they already employed sprinkling, or baptized in houses in large vessels. Formal submersion in rivers, or larger quantities of water, probably took place only where the locality conveniently allowed it" [OLSHAUSEN].
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Fitting inauguration of the new kingdom, as an economy of the Spirit!
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:42 - -- "teaching"; giving themselves up to the instructions which, in their raw state, would be indispensable to the consolidation of the immense multitude s...
"teaching"; giving themselves up to the instructions which, in their raw state, would be indispensable to the consolidation of the immense multitude suddenly admitted to visible discipleship.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:42 - -- Not certainly in the Lord's Supper alone, but rather in frugal repasts taken together, with which the Lord's Supper was probably conjoined until abuse...
Not certainly in the Lord's Supper alone, but rather in frugal repasts taken together, with which the Lord's Supper was probably conjoined until abuses and persecution led to the discontinuance of the common meal.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
A deep awe rested upon the whole community.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:46 - -- Rather, "at home" (Margin), that is, in private, as contrasted with their temple-worship, but in some stated place or places of meeting.
Rather, "at home" (Margin), that is, in private, as contrasted with their temple-worship, but in some stated place or places of meeting.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:47 - -- "Go thy way, eat thy bread with joy, and drink thy wine with a merry heart, for God now accepteth thy works" (Ecc 9:7, also see on Act 8:39).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:47 - -- Commending themselves by their lovely demeanor to the admiration of all who observed them.
Commending themselves by their lovely demeanor to the admiration of all who observed them.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
That is, JESUS, as the glorified Head and Ruler of the Church.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:47 - -- Kept adding; that is, to the visible community of believers, though the words "to the Church" are wanting in the most ancient manuscripts.
Kept adding; that is, to the visible community of believers, though the words "to the Church" are wanting in the most ancient manuscripts.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:47 - -- Rather, "the saved," or "those who were being saved." "The young Church had but few peculiarities in its outward form, or even in its doctrine: the si...
Rather, "the saved," or "those who were being saved." "The young Church had but few peculiarities in its outward form, or even in its doctrine: the single discriminating principle of its few members was that they all recognized the crucified Jesus of Nazareth as the Messiah. This confession would have been a thing of no importance, if it had only presented itself as a naked declaration, and would never in such a case have been able to form a community that would spread itself over the whole Roman empire. It acquired its value only through the power of the Holy Ghost, passing from the apostles as they preached to the hearers; for He brought the confession from the very hearts of men (1Co 12:3), and like a burning flame made their souls glow with love. By the power of this Spirit, therefore, we behold the first Christians not only in a state of active fellowship, but also internally changed: the narrow views of the natural man are broken through; they have their possessions in common, and they regard themselves as one family" [OLSHAUSEN].|| 26998||1||11||0||@@PETER HEALS A LAME MAN AT THE TEMPLE GATE--HS ADDRESS TO THE WONDERING MULTITUDE.==== (Acts 3:1-26)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
JFB: Act 2:47 - -- Already associated by their Master, first with James (Mar 1:29; Mar 5:37; Mar 9:2), then by themselves (Luk 22:8; and see Joh 13:23-24). Now we find t...
Already associated by their Master, first with James (Mar 1:29; Mar 5:37; Mar 9:2), then by themselves (Luk 22:8; and see Joh 13:23-24). Now we find them constantly together, but John (yet young) only as a silent actor.
Clarke -> Act 2:13; Act 2:14; Act 2:14; Act 2:15; Act 2:16; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:18; Act 2:19; Act 2:19; Act 2:20; Act 2:21; Act 2:22; Act 2:23; Act 2:23; Act 2:24; Act 2:24; Act 2:25; Act 2:26; Act 2:27; Act 2:27; Act 2:28; Act 2:29; Act 2:30; Act 2:31; Act 2:32; Act 2:33; Act 2:33; Act 2:34; Act 2:35; Act 2:36; Act 2:37; Act 2:37; Act 2:38; Act 2:38; Act 2:38; Act 2:38; Act 2:39; Act 2:39; Act 2:40; Act 2:41; Act 2:41; Act 2:41; Act 2:42; Act 2:42; Act 2:42; Act 2:42; Act 2:43; Act 2:44; Act 2:44; Act 2:44; Act 2:46; Act 2:46; Act 2:46; Act 2:47; Act 2:47; Act 2:47
Clarke: Act 2:13 - -- These men are full of new wine - Rather sweet wine, for γλευκους, cannot mean the mustum , or new wine, as there could be none in Judea so ...
These men are full of new wine - Rather sweet wine, for
Aufidius forti miscebat mella Falerno.
Mendose: quoniam vacuis committere venis
Nil nisi lene decet: leni praecordia mulso
Prolueris melius
Aufidius first, most injudicious, quaffe
Strong wine and honey for his morning draught
With lenient bev’ rage fill your empty veins
For lenient must will better cleanse the reins
Francis.
||&&$![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:14 - -- Peter, standing up with the eleven - They probably spoke by turns, not altogether; but Peter began the discourse
Peter, standing up with the eleven - They probably spoke by turns, not altogether; but Peter began the discourse
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:14 - -- All ye that dwell at Jerusalem - Οἱ κατοικουντες would be better translated by the word sojourn, because these were not inhabitant...
All ye that dwell at Jerusalem -
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:15 - -- But the third hour of the day - That is, about nine o’ clock in the morning, previously to which the Jews scarcely ever ate or drank, for that ...
But the third hour of the day - That is, about nine o’ clock in the morning, previously to which the Jews scarcely ever ate or drank, for that hour was the hour of prayer. This custom appears to have been so common that even the most intemperate among the Jews were not known to transgress it; Peter therefore spoke with confidence when he said, these are not drunken - seeing it is but the third hour of the day, previously to which even the intemperate did not use wine.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:16 - -- Spoken by the prophet Joel - The prophecy which he delivered so long ago is just now fulfilled; and this is another proof that Jesus whom ye have cr...
Spoken by the prophet Joel - The prophecy which he delivered so long ago is just now fulfilled; and this is another proof that Jesus whom ye have crucified is the Messiah.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:17 - -- In the last days - The time of the Messiah; and so the phrase was understood among the Jews
In the last days - The time of the Messiah; and so the phrase was understood among the Jews
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:17 - -- I will pour out of my Spirit upon all flesh - Rabbi Tanchum says, "When Moses laid his hands upon Joshua, the holy blessed God said, In the time of ...
I will pour out of my Spirit upon all flesh - Rabbi Tanchum says, "When Moses laid his hands upon Joshua, the holy blessed God said, In the time of the old text, each individual prophet prophesied; but, in the times of the Messiah, all the Israelites shall be prophets."And this they build on the prophecy quoted in this place by Peter
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:17 - -- Your sons and your daughters shall prophesy - The word prophesy is not to be understood here as implying the knowledge and discovery of future event...
Your sons and your daughters shall prophesy - The word prophesy is not to be understood here as implying the knowledge and discovery of future events; but signifies to teach and proclaim the great truths of God, especially those which concerned redemption by Jesus Christ
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:17 - -- Your young men shall see visions, etc. - These were two of the various ways in which God revealed himself under the Old Testament. Sometimes he reve...
Your young men shall see visions, etc. - These were two of the various ways in which God revealed himself under the Old Testament. Sometimes he revealed himself by a symbol, which was a sufficient proof of the Divine presence: fire was the most ordinary, as it was the most expressive, symbol. Thus he appeared to Moses on Mount Horeb, and afterwards at Sinai; to Abraham, Genesis 15:1-21; to Elijah, 1Ki 19:11, 1Ki 19:12. At other times he revealed himself by angelic ministry: this was frequent, especially in the days of the patriarchs, of which we find many instances in the book of Genesis
By dreams he discovered his will in numerous instances: see the remarkable case of Joseph, Gen 37:5, Gen 37:9; of Jacob, Gen 28:1, etc.; Gen 46:2, etc.; of Pharaoh, Gen 41:1-7; of Nebuchadnezzar, Dan 4:10-17. For the different ways in which God communicated the knowledge of his will to mankind, see the note on Gen 15:1.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:18 - -- On my servants and on my handmaidens - This properly means persons of the lowest condition, such as male and female slaves. As the Jews asserted tha...
On my servants and on my handmaidens - This properly means persons of the lowest condition, such as male and female slaves. As the Jews asserted that the spirit of prophecy never rested upon a poor man, these words are quoted to show that, under the Gospel dispensation, neither bond nor free, male nor female, is excluded from sharing in the gifts and graces of the Divine Spirit.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:19 - -- I will show wonders - It is likely that both the prophet and the apostle refer to the calamities that fell upon the Jews at the destruction of Jerus...
I will show wonders - It is likely that both the prophet and the apostle refer to the calamities that fell upon the Jews at the destruction of Jerusalem, and the fearful signs and portents that preceded those calamities. See the notes on Mat 24:5-7 (note), where these are distinctly related
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:19 - -- Blood, fire, and vapour of smoke - Skirmishes and assassinations over the land, and wasting the country with fire and sword.
Blood, fire, and vapour of smoke - Skirmishes and assassinations over the land, and wasting the country with fire and sword.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:20 - -- The sun shall be turned into darkness, and the moon into blood - These are figurative representations of eclipses, intended most probably to point o...
The sun shall be turned into darkness, and the moon into blood - These are figurative representations of eclipses, intended most probably to point out the fall of the civil and ecclesiastical state in Judea: see the notes on Mat 24:29. That the Sun is darkened when a total eclipse takes place, and that the Moon appears of a bloody hue in such circumstances, every person knows.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:21 - -- Whosoever shall call on the name of the Lord shall be saved - The predicted ruin is now impending; and only such as receive the Gospel of the Son of...
Whosoever shall call on the name of the Lord shall be saved - The predicted ruin is now impending; and only such as receive the Gospel of the Son of God shall be saved. And that none but the Christians did escape, when God poured out these judgments, is well known; and that All the Christians did escape, not one of them perishing in these devastations, stands attested by the most respectable authority. See the note on Mat 24:13.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:22 - -- A man approved of God - Αποδεδειγμενον, celebrated, famous. The sense of the verse seems to be this: Jesus of Nazareth, a man sent of...
A man approved of God -
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:23 - -- Him, being delivered by the determinate counsel - Bp. Pearce paraphrases the words thus: Him having been given forth; i.e. sent into the world, and ...
Him, being delivered by the determinate counsel - Bp. Pearce paraphrases the words thus: Him having been given forth; i.e. sent into the world, and manifested by being made flesh, and dwelling among you, as it is said in Joh 1:14; see also Act 4:28
Kypke contends that
By the determinate counsel,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:23 - -- By wicked hands have crucified and slain - I think this refers to the Romans, and not to the Jews; the former being the agents, to execute the evil ...
By wicked hands have crucified and slain - I think this refers to the Romans, and not to the Jews; the former being the agents, to execute the evil purposes of the latter. It is well known that the Jews acknowledged that they had no power to put our Lord to death, Joh 18:31, and it is as well known that the punishment of the cross was not a Jewish, but a Roman, punishment: hence we may infer that by
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:24 - -- Whom God hath raised up - For, as God alone gave him up to death, so God alone raised him up from death
Whom God hath raised up - For, as God alone gave him up to death, so God alone raised him up from death
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:24 - -- Having loosed the pains of death - It is generally supposed that this expression means, the dissolving of those bonds or obligations by which those ...
Having loosed the pains of death - It is generally supposed that this expression means, the dissolving of those bonds or obligations by which those who enter into the region of the dead are detained there till the day of the resurrection; and this is supposed to be the meaning of
Instead of
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:25 - -- For David speaketh concerning him - The quotation here is made from Psa 16:8-11 (note), which contains a most remarkable prophecy concerning Christ,...
For David speaketh concerning him - The quotation here is made from Psa 16:8-11 (note), which contains a most remarkable prophecy concerning Christ, every word of which applies to him, and to him exclusively. See the notes there.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:26 - -- And my tongue was glad - In the Hebrew it is ויגל כבודי vaiyagel kebodi , "And my glory was glad:"but the evangelist follows the Septuagin...
And my tongue was glad - In the Hebrew it is
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:27 - -- Thou wilt not leave my soul in hell - Εις Ἁιδου, in hades, that is, the state of separate spirits, or the state of the dead. Hades was a ...
Thou wilt not leave my soul in hell -
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:27 - -- To see corruption - Dust thou art, and unto dust thou shalt return, was a sentence pronounced on man after the fall: therefore this sentence could b...
To see corruption - Dust thou art, and unto dust thou shalt return, was a sentence pronounced on man after the fall: therefore this sentence could be executed on none but those who were fallen; but Jesus, being conceived without sin, neither partook of human corruption, nor was involved in the condemnation of fallen human nature; consequently, it was impossible for his body to see corruption; and it could not have undergone the temporary death, to which it was not naturally liable, had it not been for the purpose of making an atonement. It was therefore impossible that the human nature of our Lord could be subject to corruption: for though it was possible that the soul and it might be separated for a time, yet, as it had not sinned, it was not liable to dissolution; and its immortality was the necessary consequence of its being pure from transgression.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:28 - -- Thou hast made known to me the ways of life - That is, the way from the region of death, or state of the dead and separate spirits; so that I shall ...
Thou hast made known to me the ways of life - That is, the way from the region of death, or state of the dead and separate spirits; so that I shall resume the same body, and live the same kind of life, as I had before I gave up my life for the sin of the world.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:29 - -- Let me speak freely - of the patriarch David - In Midris Tillin, it is said, in a paraphrase on the words, my flesh shall rest in hope, "Neither wor...
Let me speak freely - of the patriarch David - In Midris Tillin, it is said, in a paraphrase on the words, my flesh shall rest in hope, "Neither worm nor insect had power over David."It is possible that this opinion prevailed in the time of St. Peter, and, if so, his words are the more pointed and forcible; and therefore thus applied by Dr. Lightfoot: "That this passage, Thou shalt not leave my soul in hell, etc., is not to be applied to David himself appears in that I may confidently aver concerning him, that he was dead and buried, and never rose again; but his soul was left
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:30 - -- According to the flesh, he would raise up Christ - This whole clause is wanting in ACD, one of the Syriac, the Coptic, Ethiopic, Armenian, and Vulga...
According to the flesh, he would raise up Christ - This whole clause is wanting in ACD, one of the Syriac, the Coptic, Ethiopic, Armenian, and Vulgate; and is variously entered in others. Griesbach rejects it from the text, and Professor White says of the words, " certissime delenda ,"they should doubtless be expunged. This is a gloss, says Schoettgen, that has crept into the text, which I prove thus
1. The Syriac and Vulgate, the most ancient of the versions, have not these words
2. The passage is consistent enough and intelligible without them
3. They are superfluous, as the mind of the apostle concerning the resurrection of Christ follows immediately in the succeeding verse
The passage therefore, according to Bp. Pearce, should be read thus: Therefore being a prophet, and knowing that God had sworn with an oath, of the fruit of his loins, to set on his throne; and foreseeing that he (God) would raise up Christ, he spake of the resurrection of Christ, etc. "In this transition, the words which Peter quotes for David’ s are exactly the same with what we read in the psalm above mentioned; and the circumstance of David’ s foreseeing that Christ was to be raised up, and was the person meant, is not represented as a part of the oath; but is only made to be Peter’ s assertion, that David, as a prophet, did foresee it, and meant it."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:31 - -- That his soul was not left in hell - The words ἡ ψυχη αυτου, his soul, are omitted by ABCD, Syriac, Coptic, Ethiopic, and Vulgate. Grie...
That his soul was not left in hell - The words
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:32 - -- Whereof we all are witnesses - That is, the whole 120 saw him after he rose from the dead, and were all ready, in the face of persecution and death,...
Whereof we all are witnesses - That is, the whole 120 saw him after he rose from the dead, and were all ready, in the face of persecution and death, to attest this great truth.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:33 - -- By the right hand of God exalted - Raised by omnipotence to the highest dignity in the realms of glory, to sit at the right hand of God, and adminis...
By the right hand of God exalted - Raised by omnipotence to the highest dignity in the realms of glory, to sit at the right hand of God, and administer the laws of both worlds
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:33 - -- The promise of the Holy Ghost - This was the promise that he had made to them a little before he suffered, as may be seen in Joh 14:16, etc., Joh 16...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:34 - -- David is not ascended - Consequently, he has not sent forth this extraordinary gift, but it comes from his Lord, of whom he said, The Lord said unto...
David is not ascended - Consequently, he has not sent forth this extraordinary gift, but it comes from his Lord, of whom he said, The Lord said unto my Lord, etc. See the note on these words, Mat 22:44 (note).
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:35 - -- Until I make thy foes thy footstool - It was usual with conquerors to put their feet on the necks of vanquished leaders, as emblematical of the stat...
Until I make thy foes thy footstool - It was usual with conquerors to put their feet on the necks of vanquished leaders, as emblematical of the state of subjection to which they were reduced, and the total extinction of their power. By quoting these words, Peter shows the Jews, who continued enemies to Christ, that their discomfiture and ruin must necessarily take place, their own king and prophet having predicted this in connection with the other things which had already been so literally and circumstantially fulfilled. This conclusion had the desired effect, when pressed home with the strong application in the following verse.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:36 - -- Both Lord and Christ - Not only the Messiah, but the supreme Governor of all things and all persons, Jews and Gentiles, angels and men. In the prece...
Both Lord and Christ - Not only the Messiah, but the supreme Governor of all things and all persons, Jews and Gentiles, angels and men. In the preceding discourse, Peter assumes a fact which none would attempt to deny, viz. that Jesus had been lately crucified by them
He then
1. Proves his resurrection
2. His ascension
3. His exaltation to the right hand of God
4. The effusion of the Holy Spirit, which was the fruit of his glorification, and which had not only been promised by himself, but foretold by their own prophets: in consequence of which
5. It was indisputably proved that this same Jesus, whom they had crucified, was the promised Messiah; and if so
6. The Governor of the universe, from whose power and justice they had every thing to dread, as they refused to receive his proffered mercy and kindness.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:37 - -- When they heard this, they were pricked in their heart - This powerful, intelligent, consecutive, and interesting discourse, supported every where b...
When they heard this, they were pricked in their heart - This powerful, intelligent, consecutive, and interesting discourse, supported every where by prophecies and corresponding facts, left them without reply and without excuse; and they plainly saw there was no hope for them, but in the mercy of him whom they had rejected and crucified
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:37 - -- What shall we do? - How shall we escape those judgments which we now see hanging over our heads?
What shall we do? - How shall we escape those judgments which we now see hanging over our heads?
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:38 - -- Peter said unto them, Repent - Μετανοησατε ; Humble yourselves before God, and deeply deplore the sins you have committed; pray earnestl...
Peter said unto them, Repent -
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:38 - -- And be baptized every one of you - Take on you the public profession of the religion of Christ, by being baptized in his name; and thus acknowledge ...
And be baptized every one of you - Take on you the public profession of the religion of Christ, by being baptized in his name; and thus acknowledge yourselves to be his disciples and servants
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:38 - -- For the remission of sins - Εις αφεσιν ἁμαρτιων, In reference to the remission or removal of sins: baptism pointing out the puri...
For the remission of sins -
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:38 - -- Ye shall receive the gift of the Holy Ghost - If ye faithfully use the sign, ye shall get the substance. Receive the baptism, in reference to the re...
Ye shall receive the gift of the Holy Ghost - If ye faithfully use the sign, ye shall get the substance. Receive the baptism, in reference to the removal of sins, and ye shall receive the Holy Ghost, by whose agency alone the efficacy of the blood of the covenant is applied, and by whose refining power the heart is purified. It was by being baptized in the name of Christ that men took upon themselves the profession of Christianity; and it was in consequence of this that the disciples of Christ were called Christians.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:39 - -- For the promise is unto you - Jews of the land of Judea: not only the fulfillment of the promise which he had lately recited from the prophecy of Jo...
For the promise is unto you - Jews of the land of Judea: not only the fulfillment of the promise which he had lately recited from the prophecy of Joel was made to them, but in this promise was also included the purification from sin, with every gift and grace of the Holy Spirit
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:39 - -- To all that are afar off - To the Jews wherever dispersed, and to all the Gentile nations; for, though St. Peter had not as yet a formal knowledge o...
To all that are afar off - To the Jews wherever dispersed, and to all the Gentile nations; for, though St. Peter had not as yet a formal knowledge of the calling of the Gentiles, yet, the Spirit of God, by which he spoke, had undoubtedly this in view; and therefore the words are added, even as many as the Lord our God shall call, i.e. all to whom, in the course of his providence and grace, he shall send the preaching of Christ crucified.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:40 - -- Save yourselves from this untoward generation - Separate yourselves from them: be ye saved, σωθητε : the power is present with you; make a pr...
Save yourselves from this untoward generation - Separate yourselves from them: be ye saved,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:41 - -- They that gladly received his word - The word ασμενως, which signifies joyfully, readily, willingly, implies that they approved of the doctr...
They that gladly received his word - The word
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:41 - -- Were baptized - That is, in the name of Jesus, Act 2:38, for this was the criterion of a Jew’ s conversion; and when a Jew had received baptism...
Were baptized - That is, in the name of Jesus, Act 2:38, for this was the criterion of a Jew’ s conversion; and when a Jew had received baptism in this name he was excluded from all communication with his countrymen; and no man would have forfeited such privileges but on the fullest and clearest conviction. This baptism was a very powerful means to prevent their apostasy; they had, by receiving baptism in the name of Jesus, renounced Judaism, and all the political advantages connected with it; and they found it indispensably necessary to make the best use of that holy religion which they had received in its stead. Dr. Lightfoot has well remarked, that the Gentiles who received the Christian doctrine were baptized in the name of the Father, and the Son, and the Holy Ghost; whereas the Jewish converts, for the reasons already given, were baptized in the name of the Lord Jesus
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:41 - -- Were added - three thousand souls - Προσετεθησαν, They went over from one party to another. The Greek writers make use of this verb to ...
Were added - three thousand souls -
These 3000 were not converted under one discourse, nor in one place, nor by one person. All the apostles preached, some in one language, and some in another; and not in one house - for where was there one at that time that could hold such a multitude of people? For, out of the multitudes that heard, 3000 were converted; and if one in five was converted it must have been a very large proportion. The truth seems to by this: All the apostles preached in different, parts of the city, during the course of that day; and in that day,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:42 - -- They continued steadfastly in the apostles’ doctrine - They received it, retained it, and acted on its principles
They continued steadfastly in the apostles’ doctrine - They received it, retained it, and acted on its principles
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:42 - -- And fellowship - Κοινωνιᾳ, community; meaning association for religious and spiritual purposes, The community of goods cannot be meant; f...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:42 - -- And in breaking of bread - Whether this means the holy eucharist, or their common meals, it is difficult to say. The Syriac understands it of the fo...
And in breaking of bread - Whether this means the holy eucharist, or their common meals, it is difficult to say. The Syriac understands it of the former. Breaking of bread was that act which preceded a feast or meal, and which was performed by the master of the house, when he pronounced the blessing - what we would call grace before meat. See the form on Mat 26:26 (note)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:42 - -- And in prayers - In supplications to God for an increase of grace and life in their own souls; for establishment in the truth which they had receive...
And in prayers - In supplications to God for an increase of grace and life in their own souls; for establishment in the truth which they had received, and for the extension of the kingdom of Christ in the salvation of men. Behold the employment of the primitive and apostolic Church
1. They were builded up on the foundation of the prophets and apostles, Jesus Christ himself being the corner stone
2. They continued steadfastly in that doctrine which they had so evidently received from God
3. They were separated from the world, and lived in a holy Christian fellowship, strengthening and building up each other in their most holy faith
4. They were frequent in breaking bread; in remembrance that Jesus Christ died for them
5. They continued in prayers; knowing that they could be no longer faithful than while they were upheld by their God; and knowing also that they could not expect his grace to support them, unless they humbly and earnestly prayed for its continuance.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:43 - -- And fear came upon every soul - Different MSS. and versions read this clause thus, And Great fear and Trembling came upon every soul in Jerusalem. F...
And fear came upon every soul - Different MSS. and versions read this clause thus, And Great fear and Trembling came upon every soul in Jerusalem. For several weeks past they had a series of the most astonishing miracles wrought before their eyes; they were puzzled and confounded at the manner in which the apostles preached, who charged them home with the deliberate murder of Jesus Christ, and who attested, in the most positive manner, that he was risen from the dead, and that God had sent down that mighty effusion of the Spirit which they now witnessed as a proof of his resurrection and ascension, and that this very person whom they had crucified was appointed by God to be the Judge of quick and dead. They were in consequences stung with remorse, and were apprehensive of the judgments of God; and the wonders and signs continually wrought by the apostles were at once proofs of the celestial origin of their doctrine and mission, and of their own baseness, perfidy, and wickedness.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:44 - -- And, all that believed - Οἱ πιστευοντες, The believers, i.e. those who conscientiously credited the doctrine concerning the incarnat...
And, all that believed -
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:44 - -- Were together - Επι το αυτο . "These words signify either, in one time, Act 3:1; or in one place, Act 2:1; or in one thing. The last of th...
Were together -
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:44 - -- And had all things common - Perhaps this has not been well understood. At all the public religious feasts in Jerusalem, there was a sort of communit...
And had all things common - Perhaps this has not been well understood. At all the public religious feasts in Jerusalem, there was a sort of community of goods. No man at such times hired houses or beds in Jerusalem; all were lent gratis by the owners: Yoma, fol. 12. Megill. fol. 26. The same may be well supposed of their ovens, cauldrons, tables, spits, and other utensils. Also, provisions of water were made for them at the public expense; Shekalim, cap. 9. See Lightfoot here. Therefore a sort of community of goods was no strange thing at Jerusalem, at such times as these. It appears, however, that this community of goods was carried farther; for we are informed, Act 2:45, that they sold their possessions and their goods, and parted them to all, as every man had need. But, this probably means that, as in consequence of this remarkable outpouring of the Spirit of God; and their conversion, they were detained longer at Jerusalem than they had originally intended, they formed a kind of community for the time being, that none might suffer want on the present occasion; as no doubt the unbelieving Jews, who were mockers, Act 2:13, would treat these new converts with the most marked disapprobation. That an absolute community of goods never obtained in the Church at Jerusalem, unless for a very short time, is evident from the apostolical precept, 1Co 16:1, etc., by which collections were ordered to be made for the poor; but, if there had been a community of goods in the Church, there could have been no ground for such recommendations as these, as there could have been no such distinction as rich and poor, if every one, on entering the Church, gave up all his goods to a common stock. Besides, while this sort of community lasted at Jerusalem, it does not appear to have been imperious upon any; persons might or might not thus dispose of their goods, as we learn front the case of Ananias, Act 5:4. Nor does it appear that what was done at Jerusalem at this time obtained in any other branch of the Christian Church; and in this, and in the fifth chap., where it is mentioned, it is neither praised nor blamed. We may therefore safely infer, it was something that was done at this time, on this occasion, through some local necessity, which the circumstances of the infant Church at Jerusalem might render expedient for that place and on that occasion only.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:46 - -- They, continuing daily with one accord in the temple - They were present at all the times of public worship, and joined together in prayers and prai...
They, continuing daily with one accord in the temple - They were present at all the times of public worship, and joined together in prayers and praises to God; for it in not to be supposed that they continued to offer any of the sacrifices prescribed by the law
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:46 - -- Breaking bread from house to house - This may signify, that select companies, who were contiguous to each other, frequently ate together at their re...
Breaking bread from house to house - This may signify, that select companies, who were contiguous to each other, frequently ate together at their respective lodgings on their return from public worship. But
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:46 - -- With gladness and singleness of heart - A true picture of genuine Christian fellowship. They ate their bread: they had no severe fasts; the Holy Spi...
With gladness and singleness of heart - A true picture of genuine Christian fellowship. They ate their bread: they had no severe fasts; the Holy Spirit had done in their souls, by his refining influence, what others vainly expect from bodily austerities. It may be said also, that, if they had no severe fasts, they had no splendid feasts: all was moderation, and all was contentment. They were full of gladness, spiritual joy and happiness; and singleness of heart, every man worthy of the confidence of his neighbor; and all walking by the same rule, and minding the same thing.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:47 - -- Praising God - As the fountain whence they had derived all their spiritual and temporal blessings; seeing him in all things, and magnifying the work...
Praising God - As the fountain whence they had derived all their spiritual and temporal blessings; seeing him in all things, and magnifying the work of his mercy
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:47 - -- Having favor with all the people - Every honest, upright Jew would naturally esteem these for the simplicity, purity, and charity of their lives. Th...
Having favor with all the people - Every honest, upright Jew would naturally esteem these for the simplicity, purity, and charity of their lives. The scandal of the cross had not yet commenced; for, though they had put Jesus Christ to death, they had not get entered into a systematic opposition to the doctrines he taught
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Clarke: Act 2:47 - -- And the Lord added to the Church daily such as should be saved - Though many approved of the life and manners of these primitive Christians, yet the...
And the Lord added to the Church daily such as should be saved - Though many approved of the life and manners of these primitive Christians, yet they did not become members of this holy Church; God permitting none to be added to it, but
One MS. and the Armenian version, instead of
On that awful subject, the foreknowledge of God, something has already been spoken: see Act 2:23. Though it is a subject which no finite nature can comprehend, yet it is possible so to understand what relates to us in it as to avoid those rocks of presumption and despondency on which multitudes have been shipwrecked. The foreknowledge of God is never spoken of in reference to himself, but in reference to us: in him properly there is neither foreknowledge nor afterknowledge. Omniscience, or the power to know all things, is an attribute of God, and exists in him as omnipotence, or the power to do all things. He can do whatsoever he will; and he does whatsoever is fit or proper to be done. God cannot have foreknowledge, strictly speaking, because this would suppose that there was something coming, in what we call futurity, which had not yet arrived at the presence of the Deity. Neither can he have any afterknowledge, strictly speaking, for this would suppose that something that had taken place, in what we call pretereity, or past time, had now got beyond the presence of the Deity. As God exists in all that can be called eternity, so he is equally every where: nothing can be future to him, because he lives in all futurity; nothing can be past to him, because he equally exists in all past time; futurity and pretereity are relative terms to us; but they can have no relation to that God who dwells in every point of eternity; with whom all that is past, and all that is present, and all that is future to man, exists in one infinite, indivisible, and eternal Now. As God’ s omnipotence implies his power to do all things, so God’ s omniscience implies his power to know all things; but we must take heed that we meddle not with the infinite free agency of this Eternal Being. Though God can do all thinks, he does not all things. Infinite judgment directs the operations of his power, so that though he can, yet he does not do all things, but only such things as are proper to be done. In what is called illimitable space, he can make millions of millions of systems; but he does not see proper to do this. He can destroy the solar system, but he does not do it: he can fashion and order, in endless variety, all the different beings which now exist, whether material, animal, or intellectual; but he does not do this, because he does not see it proper to be done. Therefore it does not follow that, because God can do all things, therefore he must do all things. God is omniscient, and can know all things; but does it follow from this that he must know all things? Is he not as free in the volitions of his wisdom, as he is in the volitions of his power? The contingent as absolute, or the absolute as contingent? God has ordained some things as absolutely certain; these he knows as absolutely certain. He has ordained other things as contingent; these he knows as contingent. It would be absurd to say that he foreknows a thing as only contingent which he has made absolutely certain. And it would be as absurd to say that he foreknows a thing to be absolutely certain which in his own eternal counsel he has made contingent. By absolutely certain, I mean a thing which must be, in that order, time, place, and form in which Divine wisdom has ordained it to be; and that it can be no otherwise than this infinite counsel has ordained. By contingent, I mean such things as the infinite wisdom of God has thought proper to poise on the possibility of being or not being, leaving it to the will of intelligent beings to turn the scale. Or, contingencies are such possibilities, amid the succession of events, as the infinite wisdom of God has left to the will of intelligent beings to determine whether any such event shall take place or not. To deny this would involve the most palpable contradictions, and the most monstrous absurdities. If there be no such things as contingencies in the world, then every thing is fixed and determined by an unalterable decree and purpose of God; and not only all free agency is destroyed, but all agency of every kind, except that of the Creator himself; for on this ground God is the only operator, either in time or eternity: all created beings are only instruments, and do nothing but as impelled and acted upon by this almighty and sole Agent. Consequently, every act is his own; for if he have purposed them all as absolutely certain, having nothing contingent in them, then he has ordained them to be so; and if no contingency, then no free agency, and God alone is the sole actor. Hence the blasphemous, though, from the premises, fair conclusion, that God is the author of all the evil and sin that are in the world; and hence follows that absurdity, that, as God can do nothing that is wrong, Whatever Is, is Right. Sin is no more sin; a vicious human action is no crime, if God have decreed it, and by his foreknowledge and will impelled the creature to act it. On this ground there can be no punishment for delinquencies; for if every thing be done as God has predetermined, and his determinations must necessarily be all right, then neither the instrument nor the agent has done wrong. Thus all vice and virtue, praise and blame, merit and demerit, guilt and innocence, are at once confounded, and all distinctions of this kind confounded with them. Now, allowing the doctrine of the contingency of human actions, (and it must be allowed in order to shun the above absurdities and blasphemies), then we see every intelligent creature accountable for its own works, and for the use it makes of the power with which God has endued it; and, to grant all this consistently, we must also grant that God foresees nothing as absolutely and inevitably certain which he has made contingent; and, because he has designed it to be contingent, therefore he cannot know it as absolutely and inevitably certain. I conclude that God, although omniscient, is not obliged, in consequence of this, to know all that he can know; no more than he is obliged, because he is omnipotent, to do all that he can do
How many, by confounding the self and free agency of God with a sort of continual impulsive necessity, have raised that necessity into an all-commanding and overruling energy, to which God himself is made subject! Very properly did Milton set his damned spirits about such work as this, and has made it a part of their endless punishment: -
Others apart sat on a hill retired
In thoughts more elevate; and reasoned hig
Of providence, foreknowledge, will, and fate
Fixed fate, free-will, foreknowledge absolute
And found no end, in wand’ ring mazes lost
Parad. Lost, b. ii. l. 557
Among some exceptionable expressions, the following are also good thoughts on the flee agency and fall of man: -
- I made him just and right
Sufficient to have stood, though free to fall
Not free, what proof could they have given sincer
Of true allegiance, constant faith or love
When only what they needs must do appeared
Not what they would? What praise could they receive?
Useless and vain, of freedom both despoiled
Made passive, both had served Necessity
Not Me. -
So without least impulse or shadow of fate
Or aught by me immutably foreseen
They trespass, authors to themselves in al
Both what they judge, and what they choose, for s
I formed them free, and free they must remai
Till they enthrall themselves: I else must chang
Their nature, and revoke the high decre
Unchangeable, eternal, which ordaine
Their freedom; they themselves ordained their fall
Ibid, b. iii. l. 98, 103, 120
I shall conclude these observations with a short extract from Mr. Bird’ s Conferences, where, in answer to the objection, "If many things fall out contingently, or as it were by accident, God’ s foreknowledge of them can be but contingent, dependent on man’ s free will,"he observes: "It is one thing to know that a thing will be done necessarily; and another, to know necessarily that a thing will be done. God doth necessarily foreknow all that will be done; but he doth not know that those things which shall be done voluntarily will be done necessarily: he knoweth that they will be done; but he knoweth withal that they might have fallen out otherwise, for aught he had ordered to the contrary. So likewise God knew that Adam would fall; and get he knew that he would not fall necessarily, for it was possible for him not to have fallen. And as touching God’ s preordination going before his prescience as the cause of all events this would be to make God the author of all the sin in the world; his knowledge comprehending that as well as other things. God indeed foreknoweth all things, because they will be done; but things are not (therefore) done, because he foreknoweth them. It is impossible that any man, by his voluntary manner of working, should elude God’ s foresight; but then this foresight doth not necessitate the will, for this were to take it wholly away. For as the knowledge of things present imports no necessity on that which is done, so the foreknowledge of things future lays no necessity on that which shall be; because whosoever knows and sees things, he knows and sees them as they are, and not as they are not; so that God’ s knowledge doth not confound things, but reaches to all events, not only which come to pass, but as they come to pass, whether contingency or necessarily. As, for example, when you see a man walking upon the earth, and at the very same instant the sun shining in the heavens, do you not see the first as voluntary, and the second as natural? And though at the instant you see both done, there is a necessity that they be done, (or else you could not see them at all), yet there was a necessity of one only before they were done, (namely, the sun’ s shining in the heavens), but none at all of the other, (viz. the man’ s walking upon the earth.) The sun could not but shine, as being a natural agent; the man might not have walked, as being a voluntary one."This is a good argument; but I prefer that which states the knowledge of God to be absolutely free, without the contradictions which are mentioned above. "But you deny the omniscience of God."- No, no more than I deny his omnipotence, and you know I do not, though you have asserted the contrary. But take heed how you speak about this infinitely free agent: if you will contradict, take heed that you do not blaspheme. I ask some simple questions on the subject of God’ s knowledge and power: if you know these things better than your neighbor, be thankful, be humble, and pray to God to give you amiable tempers; for the wrath of man worketh not the righteousness of God. May he be merciful to thee and me!
Calvin: Act 2:14 - -- 14.And Peter, standing By this word standing he did signify, that there was a grave sermon made in the assembly; for they did rise when they spoke ...
14.And Peter, standing By this word standing he did signify, that there was a grave sermon made in the assembly; for they did rise when they spoke unto the people, to the end they might be the better heard. The sum of this sermon is this, he gathereth that Christ is already revealed and given by the gift of the Holy Ghost, which they saw. Yet, first, he refuteth that false opinion, in that they thought that the disciples were drunk. This refutation consisteth upon a probable argument; because men use not to be drunk betimes in the morning. For, as Paul saith,
“Those which are drunk are drunk in the night,”
(1Th 5:7.)
For they flee the light for shame. And surely so great is the filthiness of this vice, that for good causes it hateth the light. And yet this argument were not always good; for Esaias doth inveigh in his time against those which did rise early to follow drunkenness. And at this day there be many who, like hogs, so soon as they awake, run to quaffing. But because this is 89 a common custom amongst men, Peter saith, that it is no likely thing. Those which have but even small skill in antiquity do know that the civil day, from the rising of the sun until the going down thereof, was divided into twelve hours; so that the hours were longer in summer, and shorter in winter. Therefore, that which should now be the ninth before noon in winter, and in summer the eighth, was the third hour amongst the old people. 90 Therefore, whereas Peter doth only lightly remove the opinion of drunkenness, he doth it for this cause, because it had been superfluous to have stood about any long excuse. 91 Therefore, as in a matter which was certain and out of doubt, he doth rather pacify those which mocked, than labor to teach them. And he doth not so much refute them by the circumstance of time, as by the testimony of Joel. For when he saith that that is now come to pass which was foretold, he toucheth briefly their unthankfulness, because they do not acknowledge such an excellent benefit promised unto them in times past which they now see with their eyes. And whereas he upbraideth the fault of a few unto all, 92 he doth it not to this end, that he may make them all guilty of the same fault; but because a fit occasion was offered by their mocking to teach them altogether, he doth not foreslow the same. 93
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:17 - -- 17.It shall be in the last days By this effect he proveth that the Messiah is already revealed. Joel, indeed, doth not express the last days, (Joe 2:...
17.It shall be in the last days By this effect he proveth that the Messiah is already revealed. Joel, indeed, doth not express the last days, (Joe 2:29;) but for as much as he intreateth of the perfect restoring of the Church, it is not to be doubted but that that prophecy belongeth unto the last age alone. Wherefore, that which Peter bringeth doth no whit dissent from Joel’s meaning; but he doth only add this word for exposition sake, that the Jews might know that the Church could by no other means be restored, which was then decayed, but by being renewed by the Spirit of God. Again, because the repairing of the Church should be like unto a new world, therefore Peter saith that it shall be in the last days. And surely this was a common and familiar thing among the Jews, that all those great promises concerning the blessed and well-ordered state of the Church should not be fulfilled until Christ, by his coming, should restore all things. Wherefore, it was out of all doubt amongst them, that that which is cited out of Joel doth appertain unto the last time. Now, by the last days, or fullness of time, is meant the stable and firm condition of the Church, in the manifestation or revealing of Christ.
I will pour out my Spirit He intendeth to prove, (as we have already said,) that the Church can be repaired by no other means, saving only by the giving of the Holy Spirit. Therefore, forasmuch as they did all hope that the restoring drew near, he accuseth them of sluggishness, because they do not once think upon the way and means thereof. And when the prophet saith, “I will pour out,” it is, without all question, that he meant by this word to note the great abundance of the Spirit. And we must take I will pour out of my Spirit in the same sense, as if he had said simply, I will pour out my Spirit. For these latter words are the words of the prophet. But Peter followed the Grecians, who translate the Hebrew word
Upon all flesh It appeareth, by that which followeth, of what force this generality is; for, first, it is set down generally, all flesh; after that the partition is added, whereby the prophet doth signify that there shall be no difference of age or kind, but that God admitteth all, one with another, unto the partaking of his grace. It is said, therefore, all flesh, because both young and old, men and women, are thereby signified; yet here may a question be moved, why Clod doth promise that unto his people, as some new and unwonted good thing, which he was wont to do for them from the beginning throughout all ages; for there was no age void of the grace of the Spirit. The answer of this question is set down in these two sentences: “I will pour out,” and, “Upon all flesh;” for we must here note a double contrariety, 94 between the time of the Old and New Testament; for the pouring out (as I have said) doth signify great plenty, when as there was under the law a more scarce distribution; for which cause John also doth say that the Holy Ghost was not given until Christ ascended into heaven. All flesh cloth signify an infinite multitude, whereas God in times past did vouchsafe to bestow such plenty of his Spirit only upon a few.
Furthermore, in both comparisons we do not deny but that the fathers under the law were partakers of the self, same grace whereof we are partakers; but the Lord doth show that we are above them, as we are indeed. I say, that all godly men since the beginning of the world were endued with the same spirit of understanding, of righteousness, and sanctification, wherewith the Lord doth at this day illuminate and regenerate us; but there were but a few which had the light of knowledge given them then, if they be compared with the great multitude of the faithful, which Christ did suddenly gather together by his coming. Again, their knowledge was but obscure and slender, and, as it were, covered with a veil, if it be compared with that which we have at this day out of the gospel, where Christ, the Sun of righteousness, doth shine with perfect brightness, as it were at noon day. Neither doth that any whit hurt or hinder that a few had such an excellent faith, that peradventure they have no equal at this day. For their understanding did nevertheless smell or savor of the instruction and schoolmastership 95 of the law. For that is always true, that godly kings and prophets have not seen nor heard those things which Christ hath revealed by his coming. Therefore, to the end the prophet Joel may commend the excellency of the New Testament, he affirmeth and foretelleth that the grace of the Spirit shall be more plentiful in time thereof; and, again, that it shall come unto more men, (Mat 13:17; Luk 10:24.)
And your sons shall prophesy By the word prophesy he meant to note the rare and singular gift of understanding. And to the same purpose tendeth that partition which followeth afterwards, “your young men shall see visions, and your old men shall dream dreams;” for we gather out of the twelfth chapter of Numbers, that these were the two ordinary ways whereby God did reveal himself to the prophets. For in that place, when the Lord exempteth Moses from the common sort of prophets, he saith,
“I appear unto my servants by a vision, or by a dream; but I speak unto Moses face to face,”
(Num 12:6.)
Therefore, we see that two kinds are put after the general word for a confirmation; yet this is the sum, that they shall all be prophets so soon as the Holy Ghost shall be poured out from heaven. But here it is objected, that there was no such thing, even in the apostles themselves, neither yet in the whole multitude of the faithful. I answer, that the prophets did commonly use to shadow under tropes most fit for their time, 96 the kingdom of Christ. When they speak of the worship of God, they name the altar, the sacrifices, the offering of gold, silver, and frankincense. Notwithstanding, we know that the altars do cease, the sacrifices are abolished, whereof there was some use in time of the law; and that the Lord requireth some higher thing at our hands than earthly riches. That is true, indeed; but the prophets, whilst they apply their style unto the capacity of their time, comprehend under figures (wherewith the people were then well acquainted) those things which we see otherwise revealed and showed now, like as when he promiseth elsewhere that he will make priests of Levites, and Levites of the common sort of men, (Isa 66:21,) this is his meaning, that under the kingdom of Christ every base person shall be extolled unto an honorable estate; therefore, if we desire to ]lave the true and natural meaning of this place, we must not urge the words which are taken out of the old order 97 of the law; but we must only seek the truth without figures, and this is it, that the apostles, through the sudden inspiration of the Spirit, did intreat of the heavenly mysteries prophetically, that is to say, divinely, and above the common order.
Therefore, this word prophesy doth signify nothing else save only the rare and excellent gift of understanding, as if Joel should say, Under the kingdom of Christ there shall not be a few prophets only, unto whom God may reveal his secrets; but all men shall be endued with spiritual wisdom, even to the prophetical excellency. As it is also in Jeremiah,
“Every man shall no longer teach his neighbor; because they shall all know me, from the least unto the greatest,”
(Jer 31:34.)
And in these words Peter inviteth the Jews, unto whom he speaketh, to be partakers of the same grace. As if he should say, the Lord is ready to pour out that Spirit far and wide which he hath poured upon us. Therefore, unless you yourselves be the cause of let, ye shall receive with us of this fullness. And as for us, let us know that the same is spoken to us at this day which was then spoken to the Jews. For although those visible graces of the Spirit be ceased, yet God hath not withdrawn his Spirit from his Church. Wherefore he offereth him daily unto us all, by this same promise, without putting any difference. Wherefore we are poor and needy only through our own sluggishness; and also it appeareth manifestly, that those are wicked and sacrilegious enemies of the Spirit which keep back the Christian common people from the knowledge of God; and forasmuch as he himself doth not only admit, but also call by name unto himself, women and men, young and old.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:18 - -- 18.Upon my servants In these words the promise is restrained unto the worshippers of God. For God doth not profane his Spirit; which he should do, if...
18.Upon my servants In these words the promise is restrained unto the worshippers of God. For God doth not profane his Spirit; which he should do, if he should make the stone common to the unbelieving and despisers. It is certain that we are made the servants of God by the Spirit; and that, therefore, we are not, until such time as we have received the same; but, first, whom God hath adopted to be of his family, and whom he hath framed by his Spirit to obey him, those doth he furnish with new gifts afterward. Again, the prophet did not respect that order of thee, but his meaning was to make this grace proper to the Church alone. And forasmuch as the Church was only among the Jews, he calleth them honorably the servants and handmaids of God. But after that God did gather unto himself on every side a Church, the wall of separation being pulled down, so many as are received into the society of the covenant are called by the same name. Only let us remember, that the Spirit is appointed for the Church properly.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:19 - -- 19.And I will show wonders We must first see what is meant by this great day of the Lord. Some do expound it of the former coming of Christ in the fl...
19.And I will show wonders We must first see what is meant by this great day of the Lord. Some do expound it of the former coming of Christ in the flesh; and others refer it unto the last day of the resurrection, I do allow neither opinion. For, in my judgment, the prophet comprehendeth the whole kingdom of Christ. And so he calleth it the great day, after that the Son of God began to be revealed in the flesh, that he may lead us into the fulfilling of his kingdom. Therefore, he appointeth no certain day, but he beginneth this day at the first preaching of the gospel, and he extendeth the same unto the last resurrection. Those which restrain it unto the time of the apostles are moved with this reason, because the prophet joineth this member and that which goeth next before together. But in that there is no absurdity at all, because the prophet doth assign the time when these things began to come to pass, howsoever they have a continual going forward even until the end of the world. Furthermore, whereas he saith that the sun shall be turned to darkness, and the moon into blood, they are figurative speeches, whereby he doth give us to understand thus much, that the Lord will show tokens of his wrath through the whole frame of the world, which shall bring men even to their wit’s end, as if there should be some horrible and fearful change of nature wrought. For as the sun and moon are unto us witnesses of God’s fatherly favor towards us, whilst that by course they give light to the earth; so, on the other side, the prophet saith, that they shall be messengers to foreshow God’s wrath and displeasure. And this is the second member of the prophecy. For after that he had intreated of the spiritual grace which should be abundantly poured out upon all flesh, lest any man should imagine that all things should be quiet and prosperous together, therewithal he addeth that the estate of the world shall be troublesome, and full of great fear under Christ; as Christ himself doth more fully declare, Mat 24:0 and Luk 21:0.
But this serveth greatly to the setting forth of grace, that whereas all things do threaten destruction, yet whosoever doth call upon the name of the Lord is sure to be saved. By the darkness of the sun, by the bloody streaming of the moon, by the black vapor of smoke, the prophet meant to declare, that whithersoever men turn their eyes, there shall many things appear, both upward and downward, which may make them amazed and afraid, as he hath already said. Therefore, this is as much as if he should have said, that the world was never in a more miserable case, that there were never so many and such cruel tokens of God’s wrath. Hence may we gather how inestimable the goodness of God is, who offereth a present remedy for so great evils; and again, how unthankful they are towards God, and how froward, which do not flee unto the sanctuary of salvation, which is nigh unto them, and doth meet them. Again, it is out of all doubt, that God meaneth by this so doleful a description, to stir up all godly men, that they may with a more fervent desire seek for salvation. And Peter citeth it to the same end, that the Jews may know that they shall be more miserable unless they receive that grace of the Spirit which is offered unto them. Yet here may a question be asked, how this can hang together, that when Christ is revealed, there should such a sea of miseries overflow and break out therewithal? For it may seem to be a thing very inconvenient, 98 that he should be the only pledge of God’s love toward mankind, in whom the heavenly Father doth lay open all the treasure of his goodness, yea, he poureth out the bowels of his mercy upon us, and that yet, by the coming of the same, his Son, his wrath should be more hot than it was wont, so that it should, as it were, quite consume both heaven and earth at once.
But we must first mark, that because men are too slow to receive Christ, they must be constrained by divers afflictions, as it were with whips. Secondly, forasmuch as Christ doth call unto himself all those which are heavy laden and labor, (Mat 11:28,) we must first be tamed by many miseries, that we may learn humility. For through great prosperity men do set up the horns of pride. And he cannot but despise Christ fiercely, whosoever he be, that seemeth to himself to be happy. Thirdly, because we are, more than we ought, set upon the seeking of the peace of the flesh, whereby it cometh to pass that many tie the grace of Christ unto the present life, it is expedient for us to be accustomed to think otherwise, that we may know that the kingdom of Christ is spiritual. Therefore, to the end God may teach us that the good things of Christ are heavenly, he doth exercise us, according to the flesh, with many miseries; whereby it cometh to pass that we do seek our felicity without the world. Moreover, men do bring miseries upon themselves through their unthankfulness; for the servant which knoweth his master’s will, and doth not obey, is worthy of greater and more stripes, (Luk 12:47.) The more familiarly that God doth communicate with us in Christ, the more doth our ungodliness grow and break out into open contumacy, so that it is no marvel if, when Christ is revealed, there appear many tokens of God’s vengeance on the other side, forasmuch as men do hereby more grievously provoke God against them, and kindle his wrath through wicked contempt. Surely, in that the day of Christ is fearful, it is an accidental thing; whether God will correct our slothfulness, to bring us under, which [who] are yet inapt to be taught, or whether he will punish our unthankfulness. For it bringeth with it of itself nothing but that which is pleasant; but the contempt of God’s grace doth provoke him to horrible anger not without cause.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:21 - -- 21.Whosoever shall call upon An excellent place. For as God doth prick us forward like sluggish asses, with threatenings and terrors to seek salvatio...
21.Whosoever shall call upon An excellent place. For as God doth prick us forward like sluggish asses, with threatenings and terrors to seek salvation, se, after that he hath brought darkness upon the face of heaven and earth, yet doth he show a means whereby salvation may shine before our eyes, to wit, if we shall call upon him. For we must diligently note this circumstance. If God should promise salvation simply, it were a great matter; but it is a far greater when as he promiseth the same amidst manifold dungeons of death. Whilst that (saith he) all things shall be out of order, and the fear of destruction shall possess all things, only call upon me, and ye shall be saved. Therefore, howsoever man be swallowed up ill the gulf of miseries, yet is there set before him a way to escape. We must also note the universal word, whosoever For God admitteth all men unto himself without exception, and by this means doth he invite them to salvation, as Paul gathereth in the tenth chapter to the Romans, and as the prophet had set it down before,
“Thou, Lord, which hearest the prayer,
unto thee shall all flesh come,”
(Psa 65:2.)
Therefore, forasmuch as no man is excluded from calling upon God, the gate of salvation is set open unto all men; neither is there any other thing which keepeth us back from entering in, save only our own unbelief. I speak of all unto whom God doth make himself manifest by the gospel. But like as those which call upon the name of the Lord are sure of salvation, so we must think that, without the same, we are thrice miserable and undone. And when as our salvation is placed in calling upon God, there is nothing in the mean season taken from faith, forasmuch as this invocation is grounded on faith alone. There is also another circumstance no less worthy the noting; in that the prophet doth signify, that the calling upon God doth properly appertain and agree unto the last days. For although he would be called upon in all ages, notwithstanding, since that he showed himself to be a Father in Christ, we have the more easy access unto him. Which thing ought both the more to embolden us, and to take from us all sluggishness. As he himself doth also reason, that by this privilege our forwardness to pray is doubled to us: “Hitherto have ye asked nothing in nay name; ask, and ye shall receive;” as if he should say, theretofore, although I did not yet appear to be a mediator and advocate in the faith, yet did ye pray; but now, when you shall have me to be your patron, with how much more courage ought ye to do that?
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:22 - -- 22.Jesus of Nazareth Now doth Peter apply unto his purpose the prophecy of Joel; namely, that the Jews may thereby know that the time of restoring wa...
22.Jesus of Nazareth Now doth Peter apply unto his purpose the prophecy of Joel; namely, that the Jews may thereby know that the time of restoring was present; and that Christ was given them for this purpose. For this promise was no otherwise to be fulfilled, save only by the coming of the Mediator. And this is the right use of all those gifts which we have by Christ, whilst that they bring us unto Christ, as unto a fountain. But he cometh hither by little and little. For he doth not by and by in the beginning affirm that Jesus was Christ; but he saith only that he was a man sent of God; and that doth he prove by his miracles. Afterward he addeth, that he rose from death when he was slain. Whereby it appeareth more certainly and more fully that he was not one of the prophets, but the very Son of God, who was promised to be the repairer of all things. Let this, therefore, be the first member, that Jesus of Nazareth was a man approved of God by manifest testimonies, so that he could not be despised as some base and obscure person. The old interpreter did not evil 99 translate
By great works He calleth miracles by these three names. And because God doth show forth his power in them after a new and unwonted sort, or doth, at least, procure greater admiration, they are, for good causes, called great works. 101 For we are commonly more moved when any extraordinary thing doth happen. In which respect they are also called wonders, 102 because they make us astonished. And for this cause are they called signs, because the Lord will not have men’s minds to stay there, but to be lifted up higher; as they are referred unto another end. He put in three words, to the end he might the more extol Christ’s miracles, and enforce the people, by his heaping and laying of words together, to consider the same. Furthermore, he maketh not Christ the chief author, but only the minister; because, as we have already said, he determined to go forward by degrees. Notwithstanding, here may a question be asked, whether miracles do suffice to be a sufficient and just approbation [proof] or no? Because by this means inchanters might cause their legerdemain 103 to be believed. I answer, that the juggling casts of Satan do much differ from the power of God. Christ saith elsewhere, that the kingdom of Antichrist shall be in wonders, but he addeth by and by, in lying wonders, (2Th 2:9.) if any man object, that we cannot easily discern, because he saith that they shall have so great color that they shall deceive (if it could be) the very elect; I answer again, that this error proceedeth only from our own want of wit, because we are so dull; for God doth show his power manifestly enough. Therefore, there is sufficient approbation of the doctrine and of the ministry in the miracles which God doth work, so that we be not blind. And whereas it is not of sufficient force among the wicked, because they may now and then be deceived with the false miracles of Satan, this must be imputed unto their own blindness; but whosoever hath a pure heart, he doth also know God with the pure eyes of his mind, so often as he doth show himself. Neither can Satan otherwise delude us, save only when, through the wickedness of our heart, our judgment is corrupt and our eyes blinded, or at least bleared through our own slothfulness.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:23 - -- 23.Him have ye slain He maketh mention of the death of Christ for this cause chiefly, that the resurrection might the more assuredly be believed. It ...
23.Him have ye slain He maketh mention of the death of Christ for this cause chiefly, that the resurrection might the more assuredly be believed. It was a thing full well known among the Jews that Christ was crucified. Therefore, in that he rose again, it is a great and wonderful token of his Divine power. In the mean season, to the end he may prick their consciences with the feeling of sin, he saith that they slew him; not that they crucified him with their own hands, but because the people, with one voice, desired to have him put to death. And although many of the hearers unto whom he speaketh did not consent unto that wicked and ungodly cruelty, yet doth he justly impute the same to the nation; because all of them had defiled themselves either with their silence, or else through their carelessness. Neither hath the cloak and color 104 of ignorance any place, forasmuch as he was showed before of God. This guiltiness, therefore, under which he bringeth them, is a preparation unto repentance.
By the determinate counsel He removeth a stumbling-block; because it seemeth, at the first blush, to be a thing very inconvenient, [unaccountable,] that that man whom God had so greatly adorned, being afterward laid open to all manner of mocking, doth suffer so reproachful a death. Therefore, because the cross of Christ doth commonly use to trouble us at the first sight, for this cause Peter declareth that he suffered nothing by chance, or because he wanted power to deliver himself, but because it was so determined (and appointed) by God. For this knowledge alone, that the death of Christ was ordained by the eternal counsel of God, did cut off all occasion of foolish and wicked cogitation’s, and did prevent all offenses which might otherwise be conceived. For we must know this, that God doth decree nothing in vain or rashly; whereupon it followeth that there was just cause for which he would have Christ to suffer. The same knowledge of God’s providence is a step to consider the end and fruit of Christ’s death. For this meeteth us by and by in the counsel of God, that the just was delivered 105 for our sins, and that his blood was the price of our death.
And here is a notable place touching the providence of God, that we may know that as well our life as our death is governed by it. Luke intreateth, indeed, of Christ; but in his person we have a mirror, which doth represent unto us the universal providence of God, which doth stretch itself throughout the whole world; yet doth it specially shine unto us who are the members of Christ. Luke setteth down two things in this place, the foreknowledge and the decree of God. And although the foreknowledge of God is former in order, (because God doth first see what he will determine, before he doth indeed determine the same,) yet doth he put the same after the counsel and decree of God, to the end we may know that God would nothing, neither appointed anything, save that which he had long before directed to his [its] end. For men do oftentimes rashly decree many things, because they decree them suddenly. Therefore, to the end Peter may teach that the counsel of God is not without reason, he coupleth also therewithal his foreknowledge. Now, we must distinguish these two, and so much the more diligently, because many are deceived in this point. For passing over the counsel of God, wherewith he doth (guide and) govern the whole world, they catch at his bare foreknowledge. Thence cometh that common distinction, that although God doth foresee all things, yet doth he lay no necessity upon his creatures. And, indeed, it is true that God doth know this thing or that thing before, for this cause, because it shall come to pass; but as we see that Peter doth teach that God did not only foresee that which befell Christ, but it was decreed by him. And hence must be gathered a general doctrine; because God doth no less show his providence in governing the whole world, than in ordaining and appointing the death of Christ. Therefore, it belongeth to God not only to know before things to come, but of his own will to determine what he will have done. This second thing did Peter declare when he said, that he was delivered by the certain and determinate counsel of God. Therefore, the foreknowledge of God is another thing than the will of God, whereby he governeth and ordereth all things.
Some, which are of quicker sight, confess that God doth not only foreknow, but also govern with his beck what things soever are done in this world. Nevertheless, they imagine a confused government, as if God did give liberty to his creatures to follow their own nature. They say that the sun is ruled by the will of God, because, in giving light to us, he doth his duty, which was once enjoined him by God. They think that man hath free-will after this sort left him, because his nature is disposed or inclined unto the free choice of good and evil. But they which think so do feign that God sitteth idle in heaven. The Scripture teacheth us far otherwise, which ascribeth unto God a special government in all things, and in man’s actions. Notwithstanding, it is our duty to ponder and consider to what end it teacheth this; for we must beware of doting speculations, wherewith we see many carried away. The Scripture will exercise our faith, that we may know that we are defended by the hand of God, lest we be subject to the injuries of Satan and the wicked. It is good for us to embrace this one thing; neither did Peter mean anything else in this place. Yea, we have an example set before us in Christ, whereby we may learn to be wise with sobriety. For it is out of question, that his flesh was subject to corruption, according to nature. But the providence of God did set the same free. If any man ask, whether the bones of Christ could be broken or no? it is not to be denied, that they were subject to breaking naturally, yet could there no bone be broken, because God had so appointed and determined, (Joh 19:36.) By this example (I say) we are taught so to give the chiefest room to God’s providence, that we keep ourselves within our bounds, and that we thrust not ourselves rashly and indiscreetly into the secrets of God, whither our eyesight doth not pierce.
By the hands of the wicked Because Peter seemeth to grant that the wicked did obey God, hereupon followeth two absurdities; 106 the one, either that God is the author of evil, or that men do not sin, what wickedness soever they commit. I answer, concerning the second, that the wicked do nothing less than obey God, howsoever they do execute that which God hath determined with himself. For obedience springeth from a voluntary affection; and we know that the wicked have a far other purpose. Again, no man obeyeth God save he which knoweth his will. Therefore, obedience dependeth upon the knowledge of God’s will. Furthermore, God hath revealed unto us his will in the law; wherefore, those men 107 do obey God, who do that alone which is agreeable to the law of God; and, again, which submit themselves willingly to his government. We see no such thing in all the wicked, whom God doth drive hither and thither, they themselves being ignorant. No man, therefore, will say that they are excusable under this color, because they obey God; forasmuch as both the will of God must be sought in his law, and they, so much as in them lieth, do 108 to resist God. As touching the other point, I deny that God is the author of evil; because there is a certain noting of a wicked affection in this word. For the wicked deed is esteemed according to the end whereat a man aimeth. When men commit theft or murder, they offend 109 for this cause, because they are thieves or murderers; and in theft and murder there is a wicked purpose. God, who useth their wickedness, is to be placed in the higher degree. For he hath respect unto a far other thing, because he will chastise the one, and exercise the patience of the other; and so he doth never decline from his nature, that is, from perfect righteousness. So that, whereas Christ was delivered by the hands of wicked men, whereas he was crucified, it came to pass by the appointment and ordinance of God. But treason, which is of itself wicked, and murder, which hath in it so great wickedness, must not be thought to be the works of God.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:24 - -- 24.Having loosed the sorrows of death By the sorrows of death I understand some farther thing than the bodily sense or feeling. For those which duly ...
24.Having loosed the sorrows of death By the sorrows of death I understand some farther thing than the bodily sense or feeling. For those which duly consider the nature of death, because they hear that it is the curse of God, must needs conceive that God is angry in death. Hence cometh marvelous horror, wherein there is greater misery than in death itself. Furthermore, Christ died upon this occasion that he might take upon him our guiltiness. That inward fear of conscience, which made him so afraid that he sweat blood when he presented himself before the throne and tribunal seat of God, did more vex him, and brought upon him greater horror, than all the torments of the flesh. And whereas Peter saith, that Christ did wrestle with such sorrows, and doth also declare that he had the victory, by this it cometh to pass that the faithful ought not now to be afraid of death; for death hath not the like quality now which was in Adam; because by the victory of Christ the curse is swallowed up, (1Co 15:54.) We feel, indeed, yet the pricking of sorrows, but such as do not wholly wound us, whilst that we hold up the buckler of faith against them. He added a reason, because it was impossible that Christ should be oppressed by death, who is the author of life.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:25 - -- 25. The resurrection, 110 which was both declared and witnessed by certain and evident testimonies, and which might also have been gathered out of t...
25. The resurrection, 110 which was both declared and witnessed by certain and evident testimonies, and which might also have been gathered out of the continual doctrine of the prophets, was to be proved to the Jews as some new and strange thing. And no marvel. For we see that although Christ had oftentimes beat 111 the same into his disciples’ heads, yet did they profit but a little. And yet did they retain certain principles of true doctrine, which might have made a way for them unto the knowledge of Christ, as we shall see by and by. Therefore, because the gift of the Spirit was a fruit of the resurrection of Christ, he proveth by the testimony of David that Christ must needs have risen again, that the Jews may thereby know that he was the author of the gift. For he taketh it as a thing which all men grant, that he was raised up from death, that he may live not for himself, but for his. Now we see Peter’s drift; that that ought to seem no strange thing which was foretold so long before; and that Jesus is also Christ, because David did prophecy of him, as of the tied of the Church.
First of all, we must see whether this place ought altogether to be understood of Christ, as Peter affirmeth; that done, if there be any thing in the words worth noting, we will in order discuss it. Peter denieth that that agreeth with David which is said in this place:
“Thou shalt not suffer thine Holy One to see corruption,”
(Psa 16:10,)
because David’s carcass was corrupt in the grave. It seemeth at the first blush to be but a light argument. For a man might easily object, that the word is not to be urged, forasmuch as David meant nothing else, save only to exempt himself from destruction. Therefore, howsoever corruption did touch him, yet doth that no whit hinder but that he may easily say that he was safe from the danger thereof, because he knew that the Lord would deliver him. Yea, it seemeth to be a repetition of the former sentence, according to the common custom of the Hebrew tongue. Which if it be so, the sense shall be plain, that God will not suffer him to be oppressed with death, or that death should consume him. And this interpretation is confirmed by that where we read hell, it is in Hebrew
And that the Psalm ought altogether to be expounded of Christ, the thing itself doth prove. For seeing that David was one of the sons of Adam, he could not escape that universal condition and estate of mankind,
“Dust thou art, and unto dust thou shalt return,”
(Gen 3:19;)
the grave standeth open (I say) for all the children of Adam, that it may swallow them up, and consume them; so that no man can exempt himself from corruption. So that, beholding ourselves apart from Christ, we see the grave prepared for us, which threateneth to us corruption. Wherefore, if David be separated from Christ, that shall not belong to him which is here said, that he shall be preserved from the grave. Therefore, when he boasteth that he shall be free from the grave, as touching corruption, without all doubt he placeth himself in the body of Christ, wherein death was overcome, and the kingdom thereof abolished. But and if David do promise himself exempting from the grave in another respect, save only so far forth as he is a member of Christ, hereby it appeareth that this freedom must begin at Christ as at the head. What man soever shall be of sound judgment shall easily know that this is a good argument. God did put all mankind under corruption; therefore, David, inasmuch as he was of the number of men, could not be free from the same. Neither is it to be doubted, but that the Jews, before whom this sermon was made, forasmuch as without question that maxim was of force amongst them, that they were to hope for the restoring of things at the hands of Christ alone, did the more readily stay themselves upon 113 the words of Peter; because they saw that that could no otherwise be which the words do import, unless they should apply it to the Messias. For they were not come to that point of impudence, at least those of whom mention is made here, that they durst cavil in matters which were evident; for God had then offered unto his disciples those which were godly hearers, and apt to be taught. They sought the Messias in the Old Testament. They knew that David was a figure of him. There was amongst them some religion and reverence of the Scriptures then; but now the impudency of all the whole nation almost is desperate. Howsoever they be urged, they wrench themselves out one way or other. 114 Where there is no way to escape, yet they break through; although they be overcome, yet will they not yield; neither is it to be doubted but that this their shameless forwardness is a punishment for their ungodliness. But let us return unto Peter’s sermon.
Seeing that David doth not only affirm that God also shall be his deliverer, but doth express a singular way and means; namely, that he shall not be subject to the corruption of the grave, Peter doth for good causes gather, that that doth not properly appertain unto him, for that his body was corrupt in the grave. And now, because this had been somewhat hard to be spoken among the Jews, he mollifieth the hardness with a circumlocution. For he doth not flatly deny in one word that that was fulfilled indeed in David, but doth only by the way 115 signify so much unto them, because he lieth consumed in the grave after the common custom of other men. And David did so prophesy of Christ, that he did both apply this consolation unto himself privately, and’ also extend the same unto the whole body of the Church. For that which is sound and perfect in the head is spread abroad, being afterward poured out into all the members. Neither is it to be denied but that David spoke of himself in this place; yet only so far forth as he beheld himself in Christ, as in the mirror of life. First, he hath respect unto Christ; after that he turneth his eyes toward himself, and others the faithful. So that we have a general doctrine prescribed unto us in this plate, concerning the nature of faith, the spiritual joy of conscience: and the hope of eternal deliverance.
I saw We must hold this principle. If we will have God present with us, we must set him before our eyes; and that before he do appear; for the prospect of faith pierceth far further than unto the present experience. Therefore faith hath this property, to set God always before it as a guide in all dangers and confused matters. For there is nothing that doth so much hold us up, as when we know that God is present with us; as the opinion of his absence doth often cast us down, and at length quite discourage us. David addeth, That he took not heed in vain unto the direction of God. “He is (saith he) at my right hand;” whereby he doth signify that we need not to fear lest we be deceived, 116 when as we set him before us at present; for we shall always feel his help most ready. Faith, in hoping for the help of God, ought to prevent and overgo 117 all experience, and whatsoever is perceived by the sense; but so soon as it shall give this glory to God, that it doth behold him in his Word, although he be absent, and so, consequently, invisible, it shall be overcome with the effect of the thing. For the measure of faith is not able to comprehend the infinite greatness of the power and goodness of God. He draweth a similitude from those which, when they will underprop the weak, or strengthen the fearful, do join themselves unto their side. Not to be moved, is not to be thrown down from their degree, but to remain firm in their estate; like as also Psa 46:5, God is in the midst of it, therefore shall it not be moved. For although it come to pass sometimes that the godly be sore shaken, yet because they come to themselves again, they are said to continue firm. Therefore, there is no cause why they should be afraid of falling, who are upholden by the help of God. Like as, on the other side, those which place their strength anywhere else save only in God, they shall be like to fall at every blast of wind, but at any mean wind of temptation they shall fall to the ground.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:26 - -- 26.For this my heart rejoiced Joy of the soul, gladness of the tongue, and quietness of all the whole body, do ensue upon sure hope and confidence; f...
26.For this my heart rejoiced Joy of the soul, gladness of the tongue, and quietness of all the whole body, do ensue upon sure hope and confidence; for unless men be quite past feeling, 118 they must needs be careful and sorrowful, and so, consequently, miserably tormented, so long as they feel themselves destitute of the help of God. But that sure trust which we repose in God doth not only deliver us from carefulness, 119 but doth also replenish our hearts with wonderful joy (and gladness.) That is the joy which Christ promised to his disciples should be full in them, and which he testified could not be taken from them, (Joh 16:22.) He expresseth the greatness of the joy when he saith, That it cannot be kept in, but that it will break forth into the gladness of the tongue. 120
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:27 - -- 27.Because thou shalt not leave To leave the soul in hell is to suffer the same to be oppressed with destruction. There be two words used in this pla...
27.Because thou shalt not leave To leave the soul in hell is to suffer the same to be oppressed with destruction. There be two words used in this place, both which do signify the grave amongst the Hebricians. Because
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:28 - -- 28.Thou hast made known He meaneth, that he was restored from death to life by the grace of God. For in that he was, as it were, a man raised from de...
28.Thou hast made known He meaneth, that he was restored from death to life by the grace of God. For in that he was, as it were, a man raised from death to life, he acknowledgeth that it was a great good gift of God. This was in such sort fulfilled in Christ, that there wanted nothing unto perfection. As for the members they have their measure. Therefore Christ was far from corruption, that he may be the first-fruits of those which rise from death, (1Co 15:23.) We shall follow him in our order at length, but being first turned into dust, (1Co 15:42.) That which followeth, that he was filled with gladness, with the countenance of God, agreeth with that: Show us thy face, and we shall be safe. And, again, The light of thy countenance is showed upon us: thou hast put gladness in my heart. For it is only the pleasantness of God’s countenance, which doth not only make us glad, but also quickens us; again, when the same is turned away, or troubled, we must needs faint.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:30 - -- 30.Therefore, seeing he was a prophet He showeth, by two reasons, that it is no marvel if David do speak of things that should come to pass long afte...
30.Therefore, seeing he was a prophet He showeth, by two reasons, that it is no marvel if David do speak of things that should come to pass long after his time; the former is, because he was a prophet. And we know that things to come, and such as are removed far from the knowledge of men, are revealed unto the prophets. Therefore, it were wickedness to measure their speeches according to the common manner and order which we use in measuring the speeches of other men, forasmuch as they go beyond the long courses of years, having the Spirit for their director. Whereupon they are also called seers; because being placed, as it were, upon an high tower, 121 they see those things which, by reason of great distance, are hidden from other men. Another reason is, because Christ was promised to him peculiarly. This maxim was so common amongst the Jews, that they had ever now and then the son of David in their mouth, so often as there was any mention made of Christ. They be no such arguments, I confess, as do necessarily prove that this prophecy is to be expounded of Christ; neither was that Peter’s intent and purpose; but first he meant to prevent the contrary objection, whence David had such skill to foretell a thing which was unknown. Therefore he saith, That he knew Christ, both by prophetical revelation, and also by singular promise. Furthermore, this principle was of great (Rom 10:4) force amongst the better-minded sort which Paul setteth down, that Christ is the end of the law. 122 No man, therefore, did doubt of this, but that this was the mark whereat all the prophets did aim, to lead the godly unto Christ as it were by the hand. Therefore, what notable or extraordinary thing soever they did utter, the Jews were commonly persuaded that it did agree with Christ. Furthermore, we must note, that Peter doth reason soundly, when he gathered that David was not ignorant of that which was the chiefest point of all revelations.
He had sworn with an oath God swore not only to the end he might make David believe his promise, but also that the thing promised might be had in greater estimation. And to this end, in my judgment, it is here repeated, that the Jews may think with themselves of what great weight the promise was, which God did make so notable (and so famous.) The same admonition is profitable for us also. For we need not to doubt of this, but that the Lord meant to set forth the excellency of the covenant by putting in a solemn oath. In the mean season, this is also a fit remedy for the infirmity of our faith, that the sacred name of God is set forth unto us, 123 that his words may carry the greater credit. These words, “according to the flesh,” do declare that there was some more noble thing in Christ than the flesh. Therefore Christ did so come of the seed of David as he was man, that he doth nevertheless, retain his divinity; and so the distinction between the two natures is plainly expressed; when as Christ is called the Son of God, according to his eternal essence, in like sort as he is called the seed of David according to the flesh.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:32 - -- 32.This Jesus After that he had proved by the testimony of David, that it was most requisite that Christ should rise again, he saith, that he and the...
32.This Jesus After that he had proved by the testimony of David, that it was most requisite that Christ should rise again, he saith, that he and the rest of his fellows were such witnesses as saw him with their eyes after his resurrection. For this text 124 will not suffer this word raised up to be drawn into any other sense. Whereupon it followeth that that was fulfilled in Jesus of Nazareth which David did foreshow concerning Christ. After that he intreateth of the fruit or effect. For it was requisite for him to declare that first, that Christ is alive. Otherwise it had been an absurd and incredible thing that he should be the author of so great a miracle. Notwithstanding he doth therewithal teach us, that he did not rise for his own sake alone, but that he might make the whole Church partaker of his life, having poured out the Spirit.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:33 - -- 33.He being therefore exalted by the right hand of God The right hand is taken in this place for the hand or power, in like sort as it is taken every...
33.He being therefore exalted by the right hand of God The right hand is taken in this place for the hand or power, in like sort as it is taken everywhere in the Scripture. For this is his drift, to declare that it was a wonderful work of God, in that he had exalted his Christ (whom men thought to be quite destroyed by death) unto so great glory.
The promise of the Spirit for the Spirit which was promised. For he had oftentimes before promised the Spirit to his apostles. Therefore Peter doth signify, that Christ had obtained power of God the Father to fulfill the same. And he maketh mention of the promise in plain words, to the end the Jews may know that this came not to pass suddenly, but that the words of the prophet were now verified, which went long time before the thing itself.
Furthermore, whereas it is said that he obtained it of the Father, it is to be applied to the person of the Mediator. For both these are truly said, that Christ sent the Spirit from himself and from the Father. He sent him from himself, because he is eternal God; from the Father, because in as much as he is man, he receiveth that of the Father which he giveth us. And Peter speaketh wisely according to the capacity of the ignorant, lest any man should move a question out of season concerning the power of Christ. And surely forasmuch as it is the office of Christ to direct us unto his Father, this is a most apt form of speaking for the use of godliness, that Christ being placed, as it were, in the midst between God and us, doth deliver unto us with his own hand those gifts which he hath received at the hands of his Father. Furthermore, we must note this order that he saith, that the Spirit was sent by Christ after that he was exalted. This agreeth with those sentences:
“The Spirit was not yet given,
because Christ was not yet glorified,”
(Joh 7:39.)
And again,
“Unless I go hence, the Spirit will not come,”
(Joh 16:7.)
Not because the Spirit began then first to be given, wherewith the holy fathers were endued since the beginning of the world; but because God did defer this more plentiful abundance of grace, until such time as he had placed Christ in his princely seat; which is signified by this word poured out, as we saw a little before. For by this means the force and fruit of Christ his death and resurrection is sealed; and we do also thereby know, that we have lost nothing by Christ his departing out of the world; because, though he be absent in body, yet is he present with us after a better sort, to wit, by the grace of his Holy Spirit.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:34 - -- 34.For doubtless David Although they might easily gather by the very effect which they saw with their eyes, that the principality was granted and giv...
34.For doubtless David Although they might easily gather by the very effect which they saw with their eyes, that the principality was granted and given to Christ, yet to the end his glory may carry the greater credit, he proveth, by David his testimony, that it was so appointed in times past by God, that Christ should be lifted up unto the highest degree of honor. For these words, to “sit at the right hand of God,” import as much as to bear the chief rule, as we shall afterward more at large declare. Yet before he reciteth the prophecy, he saith that it agreeth only to Christ. Therefore, to the end the sense may be more manifest, the sentence must thus run. David pronounceth that it was decreed by God that a king should sit at his right hand. But this doth not appertain unto David, who was never extolled unto so great dignity. Therefore lie speaketh this of Christ. Furthermore, that ought to have seemed no strange thing unto the Jews which was foretold by the oracle of the Holy Ghost. Hereby it appeareth in what sense Peter denieth that David ascended into heaven. He intreateth not in this place of the soul of David, whether it were received into blessed rest, and the heavenly dwelling or no; but the ascending into heaven comprehendeth under it those things which Paul teacheth in the Epistle to the Ephesians, (Eph 4:9), where he placeth Christ above all heavens, that he may fulfill all things. Wherefore the disputation concerning the estate of the dead is altogether superfluous in this place. For Peter goeth about to prove no other thing but this, that the prophecy concerning the sitting at the right hand of God was not fulfilled in David, and that, therefore, the truth thereof must be sought elsewhere. And forasmuch as it can be found nowhere else save only in Jesus Christ, it resteth that the Jews 125 do know that that is showed to them in Christ which was foretold them so long before. That is true, indeed, that David reigned, God being the author hereof, and, in some respect, he was God’s vicegerent; yet not so that he might be above all creatures. Wherefore, this sitting agreeth to none, unless he excel and be above all the whole world.
The Lord said unto my Lord This is the most lawful manner of ruling, when as the king (or by what other title soever he be called) doth know that he is ordained of God, therefore David pronounceth that the commandment to reign was given unto Christ by name, (Psa 110:1.) As if he should say, He took not the honor to himself rashly, but did only obey God when he commanded him, (Heb 5:5.) Now must we see whether Peter’s reason be sound enough or no. He gathereth that the words concern Christ, because the sitting at the right hand of God doth not agree to David. It seemeth that this may be refuted, because David did reign by the peculiar commandment, name, and help of God; which is to sit at the right hand of God. But Peter taketh that for a thing which all men grant, which is true, and which I have already touched, that a greater and more royal government is here spoken of than that which David did enjoy. For howsoever he was God’s vicegerent and did, as it were, represent his person in reigning, yet is this power far inferior to that, to sit even at the right side of God. For this is attributed to Christ, because he is placed above all principality, and above every name that is named, both in this world, and in the world to come, (Eph 1:21.) Seeing that David is far inferior to the angels, he doth possess no such place that he should be counted next to God. For he must ascend far above all heavens, that he may come to the right hand of God. Wherefore no man is said to sit at it, rightly and properly, save only he which doth surpass all creatures in the degree of honor. As for him which is resident amongst the creatures, although he be reckoned in the order of angels, yet is he far from that highness. Again, we must not seek the right hand of God amongst the creatures; but it doth also surpass all heavenly principalities.
Furthermore, there is great weight even in the sentence itself. The king is commanded to bear the chiefest rule, until God have put all his enemies under his feet. Surely, although I grant that; he name of such an honorable sitting may be applied unto earthly lordship: yet do I deny that David did reign until such time as all his enemies were subdued. For we do hereby gather that the kingdom of Christ is eternal. But the kingdom of David was not only temporal, but also frail, and of a small continuance.
Moreover, when David died, he left many enemies alive here and there he got many notable victories, but he was far from subduing all his enemies. He made many of those people which were round about him tributaries to him; some did he put to flight and destroyed; but what is all this unto all? Finally, we may prove by the whole text of the Psalm, that there can nothing else be understood save only the kingdom of Christ. That I may pass over other things: that which is here spoken touching the eternal priesthood is too far disagreeing from David’s person. I know that the Jews do prattle, that kings’ sons are called elsewhere cohenim. But he intreateth here of the priesthood as it is ascribed by Moses to the king Melchizedek. And there is established by a solemn oath a certain new kind of priesthood. And, therefore, we must not here imagine any common or ordinary thing. But it had been wickedness for David to thrust himself into any part of the priest’s office. How should he then be called cohen, greater than Aaron, and consecrated of God for ever? But because I do not intend at this present to expound the whole Psalm, let this reason suffice which Peter bringeth: That he is made Lord of heaven and earth, which sitteth at the right hand of God. As touching the second member of the verse, read those things which I have noted upon the fifteenth chapter (1Co 15:25) of the former Epistle to the Corinthians, concerning the putting of his enemies under his feet.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:36 - -- 36.Therefore, let all the house of Israel know The house of Israel did confess that that Christ should come which was promised; yet did they not know...
36.Therefore, let all the house of Israel know The house of Israel did confess that that Christ should come which was promised; yet did they not know Who it was. Therefore, Peter concludeth, that Jesus: whom they had so spitefully handled, yea, whose name they did so greatly detest: is he whom they ought to acknowledge to be their Lord, and whom they ought to reverence. For, (saith he,) God hath made him Lord and Christ; that is, you must look for none other than him whom God hath made and given. Furthermore, he saith, That he was made, because God the Father gave him this honor. He joineth the title Lord with the word Christ, because it was a common thing among the Jews, that the Redeemer should be anointed upon this condition, that he might be the Head of the Church, and that the chiefest power over all things might be given him. He speaketh unto the whole house of Israel; as if he should say, Whosoever will be reckoned among the sons of Jacob, and do also look for the promise, let them know for a surety, that this is he and none other. He useth the word house, because God had separated that name and family from all other people. And he saith
And now, forasmuch as they know that Jesus is the Anointed of the Lord, the governor of the Church, and the giver of the Holy Ghost, the accusation hath so much the more force. For the putting of him to death was not only full of cruelty and wickedness, but also a testimony of outrageous disloyalty against God, of sacrilege and unthankfulness, and, finally, of apostasy. But it was requisite that they should be so wounded, lest they should have been slow to seek for medicine. And yet, notwithstanding, they did not crucify him with their own hands; but this is more than sufficient to make them guilty, in that they desired to have him put to death. And we also are accused by this same voice, if we crucify him in ourselves, being already glorified in heaven, making a mock of him, as saith the Apostle, (Heb 6:6.)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:37 - -- 37.They were pricked in heart Luke doth now declare the fruit of the sermon, to the end we may know that the power of the Holy Ghost was not only sho...
37.They were pricked in heart Luke doth now declare the fruit of the sermon, to the end we may know that the power of the Holy Ghost was not only showed forth in the diversity of tongues, but also in their hearts which heard. And he noteth a double fruit; first, that they were touched with the feeling of sorrow; and, secondly, that they were obedient to Peter’s counsel. This is the beginning of repentance, this is the entrance unto godliness, to be sorry for our sins, and to be wounded with the feeling of our miseries. For so long as men are careless, they cannot take such heed unto doctrine as they ought. And for this cause the word of God is compared to a sword, (Heb 4:12,) because it doth mortify our flesh, that we may be offered to God for a sacrifice. But there must be added unto this pricking in heart readiness to obey. Cain and Judas were pricked in heart, but despair did keep them back from submitting themselves unto God, (Gen 4:13; Mat 27:3.) For the mind being oppressed with horror, can do nothing else but flee from God. And surely when David affirmeth that a contrite spirit and an humble heart is a sacrifice acceptable to God, he speaketh of voluntary pricking; forasmuch as there is fretting and fuming mixed with the prickings of the wicked. Therefore, we must take a good heart to us, and lift up our mind with this hope of salvation, that we may be ready to addict and give over ourselves unto God, and to follow whatsoever he shall command. We see many oftentimes pricked, who, notwithstanding, do fret and murmur, or else forwardly strive and struggle, and so, consequently, go furiously mad. Yea, this is the cause why they go mad, because they feel such prickings against their will. Those men, therefore, are profitably pricked alone who are willingly sorrowful, and do also seek some remedy at God’s hands.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:38 - -- 38.Peter said Hereby we see that those do never go away empty which ask at the mouth of the Lord, and do offer themselves unto him to be ruled and ta...
38.Peter said Hereby we see that those do never go away empty which ask at the mouth of the Lord, and do offer themselves unto him to be ruled and taught; for that promise must needs be true, Knock, and it shall be opened unto you, (Mat 7:7.) Therefore, whosoever shall be rightly prepared to learn, the Lord will not suffer his godly desire to be in vain; for he is a most faithful master, so that he hath scholars which are apt to be taught and studious. Wherefore, there is no cause why he should fear, lest he suffer us to be destitute of sound counsel, if we be attentive and ready to hear him, and do not refuse to embrace whatsoever he shall teach us. And let us suffer ourselves to be governed by the counsel and authority of those men whom he offereth unto us to teach us, for this ready obedience cometh thence so suddenly in those which addict themselves unto the apostles, because they are persuaded that they are sent of God, to show them the way of salvation.
Repent There is greater force in the Greek word, for it doth signify the conversion of the mind, that the whole man may be renewed and made another man, which thing must be diligently noted, because this doctrine was miserably corrupted in the time of Popery; for they translated the name of repentance almost unto certain external rites. They babble somewhat, indeed, about the reigned contrition of the heart; but they touch that part very slightly, and they stand principally upon the external exercises of the body, which were little worth; yea, though there were in them no corruption; but they urge nothing else in a manner but reigned trifles, wherewith men are wearied in vain. Wherefore, let us know that this is the true repentance, when a man is renewed in the spirit of his mind, as Paul teacheth, (Rom 12:2.) Neither need we to doubt of this; but that Peter did preach plainly of the force and nature of repentance; but Luke doth only touch the chief points, and doth not reckon up the words of the oration which he made. We must, therefore, know thus much, that Peter did at the first exhort the Jews unto repentance; and that done, he lifted them up with hope of pardon; for he promised them forgiveness of sins, which two things are the two parts of the gospel, as we know full well; and, therefore, when Christ will briefly teach what the doctrine of the gospel doth contain, he saith, that repentance and remission of sins (Luk 24:47) must be preached in his name. Furthermore, because we are reconciled unto God only by the intercession of Christ’s death, neither are our sins otherwise purged, 126 and done away, save only by his blood, therefore, Peter calleth us back unto him by name. He putteth baptism in the fourth place, as the seal whereby the promise of grace is confirmed.
Wherefore, we have in these few words almost the whole sum of Christianity, namely, how a man renouncing himself and taking his farewell of the world, may addict himself wholly to God; secondly, How he may be delivered by free forgiveness of sins, and so adopted into the number of the children of God. And forasmuch as we can obtain none of all these things without Christ, the name of Christ is therewithal set forth unto us, as the only foundation of faith and repentance. And we must also note this, that we do so begin repentance when we are turned unto God, that we must prosecute the same during our life; therefore, this sermon must continually sound in the Church, repent, (Mar 1:15;) not that those men may begin the same, who will be counted faithful, and have a place already in the Church; but that they may go forward in the same; although many do usurp the name of faithful men, which had never any beginning of repentance. Wherefore, we must observe this order in teaching, that those which do yet live unto the world and the flesh may begin to crucify the old man, that they may rise unto newness of life, and that those who are already entered the course of repentance may continually go forward towards the mark. Furthermore, because the inward conversion of the heart ought to bring forth fruits in the life, repentance cannot be rightly taught unless works be required, not those frivolous works which are only in estimation amongst the Papists, but such as are sound testimonies of innocence and holiness.
Be baptized every one of you Although in the text and order of the words, baptism doth here go before remission of sins, yet doth it follow it in order, because it is nothing else but a sealing of those good things which we have by Christ that they may be established in our consciences; therefore, after that Peter had intreated of repentance, he calleth the Jews unto the hope of grace and salvation; and, therefore, Luke well afterwards, in Paul’s sermon, joineth faith and repentance together in the same sense, wherein he putteth forgiveness of sins in this place, and that for good considerations; for the hope of salvation consisteth in the free imputation of righteousness; and we are counted just, freely before God, when he forgiveth us our sins. And as I said before, that the doctrine of repentance hath a daily use in the Church so must we think of the forgiveness of sins, that the same is continually offered unto us; and surely it is no less necessary for us during the whole course of our life, than at our first entrance into the Church, so that it should profit us nothing to be once received into favor by God, unless this embassage should have a continual course; be-reconciled unto God, because
“he which knew no sin was made sin for us, that we might be the righteousness of God in him,”
(2Co 5:20.)
Moreover, the Papists do so corrupt this other part of the gospel, that they quite exclude the remission of sins, which was to be obtained by Christ. They confess their sins are freely forgiven in baptism, but they will have them redeemed with satisfactions after baptism; and although they mix the grace of Christ together therewithal, yet because they inwrap the same in men’s merits, they do by this means overthrow the whole doctrine of the gospel; for, first, they take from men’s consciences the certainty of faith; that done, forasmuch as they part the forgiveness of sins between the death of Christ and our satisfactions, they do altogether deprive us of Christ’s benefit. For Christ doth not reconcile us unto God in part, but wholly, neither can we obtain remission of sins by him, unless it be whole and perfect. But the Papists are much deceived therein, who restrain baptism unto the nativity and former life, as if the signification and force thereof did not reach even unto death.
Let us know, therefore, that forgiveness of sins is grounded in Christ alone, and that we must not think upon any other satisfaction 127 save only that which he hath performed by the sacrifice of his death. And for this cause, as we have already said, doth Peter express his name, whereby he doth signify unto us, that none of all these things can be rightly taught, unless Christ be set in the midst, to the end the effect of this doctrine may be sought in him. That needeth no long exposition where he commandeth them to be baptized for the remission of sins; for although God hath once reconciled men unto himself in Christ” by not imputing unto them their sins,” (2Co 5:19,) and doth now imprint in our hearts the faith thereof by his Spirit; yet, notwithstanding, because baptism is the seal whereby he doth confirm unto us this benefit, and so, consequently, the earnest and pledge of our adoption, it is worthily said to be given us for the remission of sins. For because we receive Christ’s gifts by faith, and baptism is a help to confirm and increase our faith, remission of sins, which is an effect of faith, is annexed unto it as unto the inferior mean. Furthermore, we must not fetch the definition of baptism from this place, because Peter doth only touch a part thereof. Our old man is crucified by baptism, as Paul teacheth, that we may rise unto newness of life, (Rom 6:4.) And, again, we put on Christ himself, (1Co 12:0.) and the Scripture teacheth every where, that it is also a sign and token of repentance, (Gal 3:27.) But because Peter doth not intreat in thin place openly of the whole nature of baptism, but speaking of the forgiveness of sins, doth, by the way, declare that the confirmation thereof is in baptism, there doth no inconvenience follow, if ye do omit the other part. 128
In the name of Christ Although baptism be no vain figure, but a true and effectual testimony; notwithstanding, lest any man attribute that unto the element of water which is there offered, the name of Christ is plainly expressed, to the end we may know that it shall be a profitable sign for us then, if we seek the force and effect thereof in Christ, and know that we are, therefore, washed in baptism, because the blood of Christ is our washing; and we do also hereby gather, that Christ is, the mark and end whereunto baptism directeth us; wherefore, every one profiteth so much in baptism as he learneth to look unto Christ. But here ariseth a question, Whether it were lawful for Peter to change the form prescribed by Christ? The Papists do think, at least feign so, and thence do they take a color of liberty to change or abrogate the institutions of Christ. They confess that nothing ought to be changed, as touching the substance, but they will have the Church to have liberty to change whatsoever it will in the form. But this argument may easily be answered. For we must first know that Christ did not indite and rehearse unto his apostles magical words for enchanting, as the Papists do dream, but he did, in few words, comprehend the sum of the mystery. Again, I deny that Peter doth speak in this place of the form of baptism; but he doth simply declare that the whole strength 129 of baptism is contained in Christ; although Christ cannot be laid hold on by faith without the Father by whom he was given us, and the Spirit by the which he reneweth and sanctifieth us. The answer consisteth wholly in this, that he intreateth not in this place of the certain form of baptizing, but the faithful are called back unto Christ, in whom alone we have whatsoever baptism doth prefigure unto us; for we are both made clean by his blood, and also we enter into a new life by the benefit of his death and resurrection.
Ye shall receive the gift of the Spirit Because they were touched with wondering when they saw the apostles suddenly begin to speak with strange tongues, Peter saith that they shall be partakers of the same gift if they will pass over unto Christ. Remission of sins and newness of life were the principal things, and this was, as it were, an addition, that Christ should show forth unto them his power by some visible gift. Neither ought this place to be understood of the grace of sanctification, which is given generally to all the godly. Therefore he promiseth them the gift of the Spirit, whereof they saw a pattern in the diversity of tongues. Therefore this doth not properly appertain unto us. For because Christ meant to set forth the beginning of his kingdom with those miracles, they lasted but for a time; yet because the visible graces which the Lord did distribute to his did shoe, as it were in a glass, that Christ was the giver of the Spirit, therefore, that which Peter saith doth in some respect appertain unto all the whole Church: ye shall receive the gift of the Spirit. For although we do not receive it, that we may speak with tongues, that we may be prophets, that we may cure the sick, that we may work miracles; yet is it given us for a better use, that we may believe with the heart unto righteousness, that our tongues may be framed unto true confession, (Rom 10:10,) that we may pass from death to life, (Joh 5:24) that we, which are poor and empty, may be made rich, that we may withstand Satan and the world stoutly. Therefore, the grace of the Spirit shall always be annexed unto baptism, unless the let be in ourselves.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:39 - -- 39.For the promise appertaineth unto you It was requisite that this should be expressly added, that the Jews might certainly think and persuade thems...
39.For the promise appertaineth unto you It was requisite that this should be expressly added, that the Jews might certainly think and persuade themselves that the grace of Christ did belong as well to them as to the apostles. And Peter proveth it thus, because the promise of God was made unto them. For we must always look unto this, because [that] we cannot otherwise know the will of God save only by his word. But it is not sufficient to have the general word, unless we know that the same is appointed for us. Therefore Peter saith, that those benefits which they see in him and his fellows in office were in times past promised to the Jews; because this is required necessarily for the certainty of faith, that every one be fully persuaded of this, that he is comprehended in the number of those unto whom God speaketh. Finally, this is the rule of a true faith, when I am thus persuaded that salvation is mine, because that promise appertaineth unto me which offereth the same. And hereby we have also a greater confirmation, when as the promise is extended unto those who were before afar off. For God had made the covenant with the Jews, (Exo 4:22.) If the force and fruit thereof come also unto the Gentiles, there is no cause why the Jews should doubt of themselves, but that they shall find the promise of God firm and stable.
And we must note these three degrees, that the promise was first made to the Jews, and then to their children, and last of all, that it is also to be imparted to the Gentiles. We know the reason why the Jews are preferred before other people; for they are, as it were, the first begotten in God’s family, yea, they were then separated from other people by a singular privilege. Therefore Peter observeth a good order, when he giveth the Jews the pre-eminence. Whereas he adjoineth their children unto them, it dependeth upon the words of the promise: I will be thy God, and the God of thy seed after thee, (Gen 17:7,) where God doth reckon the children with the fathers in the grace of adoption.
This place, therefore, doth abundantly refute the manifest error of the Anabaptists, which will not have infants, which are the children of the faithful, to be baptized, as if they were not members of the Church. They espy a starting hole in the allegorical sense, 130 and they expound it thus, that by children are meant those which are spiritually begotten. But this gross impudency doth nothing help them. It is plain and evident that Peter spoke thus because God did adopt one nation peculiarly. And circumcision did declare that the right of adoption was common even unto infants. Therefore, even as God made his covenant with Isaac, being as yet unborn, because he was the seed of Abraham, so Peter teacheth, that all the children of the Jews are contained in the same covenant, because this promise is always in force, I will be the God of your seed.
And to those which are afar off The Gentiles are named in the last place, which were before strangers. For those which refer it unto those Jews which were exiled afar off, (and driven) into far countries, they are greatly deceived. For he speaketh not in this place of the distance of place; but he noteth a difference between the Jews and the Gentiles, that they were first joined to God by reason of the covenant, and so, consequently, became of his family or household; but the Gentiles were banished from his kingdom. Paul useth the same speech in the second chapter to Ephesians, (Eph 2:11,) that the Gentiles, which were strangers from the promises, are now drawn near, through Jesus Christ, unto God. Because that Christ (the wall of separation being taken away) hath reconciled both (the Jews and Gentiles) unto the Father, and coming, he hath preached peace unto those which were nigh at hand, and which were afar off. Now we understand Peter’s meaning. For to the end he may amplify the grace of Christ, he doth so offer the same unto the Jews, that he saith the Gentiles are also partakers thereof. And therefore he useth this word call, as if he should say: Like as God hath gathered you together into one peculiar people heretofore by his voice, so the same voice shall sound everywhere, that those which are afar off may come and join themselves unto you, when as they shall be called by a new proclamation.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:40 - -- 40.And with many Although in these things which we have had hitherto, Luke did not recite the words of St Peter, but did only briefly touch the chief...
40.And with many Although in these things which we have had hitherto, Luke did not recite the words of St Peter, but did only briefly touch the chief points; notwithstanding he telleth us again in this place, that Peter did not use doctrine only, but did add the pricks of exhortations. And he expresseth plainly that tie stood much 131 hereupon. Whereas he saith, that he did exhort and beseech, he noteth therein his earnestness. For it was not so easy a matter for them by and by 132 to take their leave of those errors wherewith they were of late infected, and to shake off the government of the priests whereunto they were accustomed. Therefore it stood him upon to pull them violently out of this mire. The sum was this, that they should beware of that froward generation. For they could not be Christ’s unless they would depart from his professed enemies. The priests and scribes were then in great authority, and forasmuch as they did cover themselves under the visor [mask] of the Church, they did deceive the simple, this did hinder and keep back a great many from coming to Christ. Also some might waver, and other some might fall away from the right faith. Therefore Peter plainly declareth that they are a froward generation, howsoever they may boast of the title of the Church. For which cause he commandeth his hearers to separate themselves from them, lest they entangle themselves in their wicked and pestiferous fellowship. Whereas he saith, Be ye saved, he signifieth unto them that they shall surely perish if they couple themselves with such a plague. And surely experience doth teach us, how miserably those men are tossed to and fro who cannot discern the voice of their pastor from the voice of other men; 133 and again, what an hindrance softness and sluggishness is to a great many, whilst they desire to stand in a doubt. 134 Therefore he commandeth them to depart from the wicked if they will be saved. And this point of doctrine is not to be neglected. For it were not sufficient to have Christ set before us, unless we were also taught to flee those things which do lead us away from him. And it is the duty of a good shepherd to defend his sheep from the wolves. So at this day, to the end we may keep the people in the sincere doctrine of the gospel, we are ever now and then enforced to show and testify how much Papistry differeth from Christianity, and what a hurtful plague it is to be yoked with the unfaithful enemies of Christ. Neither ought Peter to be accused of railing, because he calleth the reverend 6tthers, who had the government of the Church 135 in their hands at that day, a froward generation For those dangers which may draw the soul unto destruction are to be showed by their names. For men will not beware of poison, unless they know that it is poison.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:41 - -- 41.They, therefore, which willingly Luke showeth more plainly how fruitful this one sermon which Peter made was: to wit, that it gained unto Christ a...
41.They, therefore, which willingly Luke showeth more plainly how fruitful this one sermon which Peter made was: to wit, that it gained unto Christ about three thousand men. And therewithal he declareth the nature and force of faith when he saith, that with a prompt and ready 136 mind they embraced his word. Therefore, faith must begin with this readiness and willing desire to obey. And because many do show themselves at the first very willing, who afterward have in themselves no constancy or continuance, lest we should think that it was some sudden pang 137 which by and by fell away, Luke doth also afterward commend their constancy, who (as he said) did willingly embrace this word of the apostles, showing that they were joined unto the disciples, or that they were engrafted into the same body, and that they continued in their doctrine. Therefore we must neither be slow to obey, nor yet swift to leap back; but we must stick fast, and stand stoutly to that doctrine which we did forthwith (without any tarriance [delay]) embrace. Furthermore, this example ought to make us not a little ashamed. For whereas there was a great multitude converted unto Christ with one sermon, an hundred sermons can scarce move a few of us; and whereas Luke saith that they continued, there is scarce one amongst ten that doth show even a mean desire to profit and go forward, yea, rather, the more part doth soon loathe our doctrine. Woe be, therefore, to the sluggishness and lightness of the world!
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:42 - -- 42.In their doctrine Luke doth not only commend in them the constancy of faith or of godliness, but he saith, also, that they did constantly give the...
42.In their doctrine Luke doth not only commend in them the constancy of faith or of godliness, but he saith, also, that they did constantly give themselves to those exercises which serve to the confirmation of faith; to wit, that they studied continually to profit by hearing the apostles; that they gave themselves much to prayer; that they did use fellowship and breaking of bread very much.
As touching prayer and doctrine the sense is plain. Communication or fellowship, and breaking of bread, may be taken diversely. Some think that breaking of bread doth signify the Lord’s Supper; other some do think that it signifieth alms; other some that the faithful did banquet together 138 among themselves. Some do think that
Hereby we may easily gather how frivolous the boasting of the Papists is, whilst that they carelessly 140 thunder out with fall mouth the name of the Church; whereas, notwithstanding, they have most filthily corrupted the doctrine of the apostles. For if it be duly examined, we shall find no sound part at all; and in most points they do as much dissent from the same, and have as little agreement therewith as light with darkness. The rule of worshipping God, which ought to be fetched out of the pure Word of God alone, is only made and patched together 141 amongst the Papists, of the superstitious inventions of men. They have translated unto the merits of works the hope of salvation, which ought to have rested in Christ alone. The invocation of God is altogether polluted with innumerable profane dotings of men. Finally, whatsoever is heard amongst them, it is either a deforming of the apostles’ doctrine, or else a clear overthrowing (and destroying) of the same. Therefore, we may as easily refute the foolish arrogancy of the Papists, as they can cloak their dealings with the title of the Church. For this shall be the state, 142 whether they have retained the purity of doctrine, from which they are as far as hell is from heaven. But they are wise enough in that point, because they will have no controversy moved about doctrine. But we, as I have said, may freely contemn that vain visor, [mask,] forasmuch as the Spirit of God doth pronounce that the Church is principally to be (esteemed and) discerned by this mark, if the simplicity or purity of the doctrine delivered by the apostles do flourish (and be of force) in the same.
In fellowship This member and the last do flow from the first, as fruits or effects. For doctrine is the bond of brotherly fellowship amongst us, and doth also set open unto us the gate unto God, that we may call upon him. And the Supper is added unto doctrine instead of a confirmation. Wherefore, Luke doth not in vain reckon up these four things, when as he will describe unto us the well-ordered state of the Church. And we must endeavor to keep and observe this order, if we will be truly judged to be the Church before God and the angels, and not only to make boast of the name 143 thereof amongst men. It is certain that he speaketh of public prayer. And for this cause it is not sufficient for men to make their prayers at home by themselves, unless they meet altogether to pray; wherein consisteth also the profession of faith.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:43 - -- 43.And there came He signifieth unto us that the show and sight of the Church was such, that it made others afraid which did not consent unto [its] d...
43.And there came He signifieth unto us that the show and sight of the Church was such, that it made others afraid which did not consent unto [its] doctrine; and that was done for the preserving and furthering of the Church. When there ariseth any seen all men set themselves stoutly against the same; and as novelty is odious, the Jews would never have suffered the Church of Christ to stand one minute of an hour, 144 unless the Lord had restrained them with fear as with a bridle. Furthermore, Luke noteth the manner of fear, that it was no such fear as bringeth men unto the obedience of Christ, but such as causeth men to stand in a doubt, and so, consequently, doth, as it were, so bind them hand and foot, 145 that they dare not hinder the Lord’s work. Like as there be some at this day who will willingly be ignorant of the gospel; or, at least, are so holden 146 with the cares of this world, that they cannot thoroughly join themselves unto Christ; and yet they are not so hard-hearted but that they confess that the truth is on our side; and, therefore, they rest, as it were, in the middle way, neither do they favor the cruelty of the wicked, because they are afraid to strive against God. And whereas he saith, Every soul, he speaketh thus by synecdoche. For it is certain that many did contemn the hand of God, and that other some were stricken with no great fear, but that they did furiously rage together against the Church. 147 But Luke’s meaning was this, that there appeared such power of God in the Church, that the people for the most part had not one word to say. 148
And many wonders This member serveth also to the showing of the cause. For the miracles served to make them afraid, together with other works of God, although this was not the only reason, but one of many, why they were afraid to set themselves against God, who was on that side, as they did gather by the miracles; whence we gather that they are not only profitable for this to bring men to God, 149 but also to make the wicked somewhat more gentle, and that they may tame their furiousness. Pharaoh was a man of desperate stubbornness, (Exo 8:8, etc. 19,) and yet we see how miracles do sometimes pierce his obstinate heart. He forgetteth them by and by; but when the hand of God is heavy upon him, he is compelled through fear to yield. To be brief, Luke teacheth that the Jews were by this means kept back, that the Church, which might easily have been destroyed, might have got up her head. 150 Which thing we have oftentimes tried 151 even in our time. And he doth not only declare that they were bridled with fear, lest they should be so bold as to attempt so much as they lusted to do hurt to the Church, but that they were also humbled with reverence to the glory of the gospel.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:44 - -- 44.And all Whereas I have translated it joined together, it is word for word in St Luke, Into the same, or into one, which may be expounded of th...
44.And all Whereas I have translated it joined together, it is word for word in St Luke, Into the same, or into one, which may be expounded of the place; as if he should have said that they were wont to dwell together in one place. Notwithstanding, I had rather understand it of their consent (and agreement;) as he will say in the fourth chapter, “That they had one heart,” (Act 4:32.) And so he goeth forward orderly, when, as he beginneth with their mind, he addeth afterward their bountifulness, as a fruit proceeding thence. Therefore, he giveth us to understand that they were rightly joined together with brotherly love amongst themselves, and that they did indeed declare the same, because the rich men did sell their goods that they might help the poor. And this is a singular example of love, and therefore doth Luke record the same, to the end we may know that we must relieve the poverty of our brethren with our plenty.
But this place hath need of a sound exposition, because of fantastical [fanatical] spirits, which do feign a commonalty or participation together of goods, whereby all policy or civil government is taken away; as in this age the Anabaptists have raged, because they thought there was no Church unless all men’s goods were put and gathered together, as it were, in one heap, that they might all one with another take thereof. Wherefore, we must in this point beware of two extremes. For many, under color of policy, do keep close and conceal whatsoever they have; they defraud the poor, and they think that they are twice righteous, so they take away no other men’s goods. Other some are carried into the contrary error, because they would have all things confused. But what doth Luke? Surely he noteth another order, when he saith that there was choice made in the distribution. If any man object that no man had any thing which was his own, seeing all things were common, we may easily answer. For this community or participation together must be restrained unto the circumstance which ensueth immediately; to wit, that the poor might be relieved as every man had need. We know the old proverb, “All things are common amongst friends.” When as the scholars of Pythagoras said thus, they did not deny but that every man might govern his own house privately, neither did they intend to make their own wives common; so this having of things common, whereof Luke speaketh, and which he commendeth, doth not take away household government; which thing shall better appear by the fourth chapter, whereas he nameth two alone which sold their possessions of so many thousands. Whence we gather that which I said even now, that they brought forth and made common their goods in no other respect, save only that they might relieve the present necessity. And the impudency of the monks was ridiculous, who did profess that they did observe the apostles’ rule, because they call nothing their own; and yet, nevertheless, they neither sell any thing, neither yet do they pass for any man’s poverty; 152 but they stuff their idle bellies with the blood of the poor, neither do they regard any other thing in their having of things common, save only that they may be well filled and daintily, although all the whole world be hungry. Wherein, then, are they like to the first disciples, with whom they will be thought to be able to compare? 153
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:46 - -- 46.Continuing in the temple We must note that they did frequent the temple for this cause, because there was more opportunity and occasion offered th...
46.Continuing in the temple We must note that they did frequent the temple for this cause, because there was more opportunity and occasion offered there to further the gospel. Neither were they drawn with the holiness of the place, seeing they knew that the shadows of the law were ceased; neither meant they to draw others by their example to have the temple in any such reverence; 154 but because there was there great concourse of people, who having laid aside their private cares, wherewith they had been drawn away elsewhere, 155 did seek the Lord; they were continually in the temple, that they might gain such unto Christ. There might be another reason which might induce them hereunto, that they might have a mutual conference and imparting of doctrine amongst themselves, which they could not have done so conveniently in a private house, especially seeing they were so, many.
Breaking bread from house to house Luke signifieth unto us, that they did not only show some token of true godliness publicly, but that the course and tenor of their private life was alone in that respect. For whereas some do think that in this place, by breaking of bread is meant the Holy Supper, it seemeth to me that Luke meant no such thing. He signifieth, therefore, unto us, that they used to eat together, and that thriftily. 156 For those which make sumptuous banquets do not eat their meat together so familiarly. Again, Luke addeth, in singleness of heart; which is also a token of temperance. In sum, his meaning is to declare, that their manner of living was brotherly and sober. Some do join simplicity and gladness with the praise of God; and both texts may well be allowed. 157 But because there can be no singleness of heart in praising God, unless the stone be also in all parts of the life, therefore it is certain, that there is mention made thereof in this sense, that the faithful did always use the same in all places. 158 And we must also note the circumstance of time, that, being environed and beset with many dangers, they were merry and joyful. The knowledge of God’s love toward us, and the hope of his protection, do bring us this goodness with them, that we praise God with quiet minds, whatsoever the world doth threaten. And as Luke spoke a little before of the public estate of the Church, so he declareth now what form and manner of life the faithful did use; that we may learn by their example a thrifty fellowship in our manner of living, and in all our whole life to embrace singleness, to enjoy the spiritual joy, and to exercise ourselves in the praises of God. Furthermore, the singleness of heart reacheth far; but if you join it in this place with breaking of bread, it shall signify as much as sincere love, where one man dealeth plainly with another, neither doth any man craftily hunt after his own profit. Yet had I rather set the same against that carefulness, wherewith worldly men 159 do too much torment themselves. For when as we do not cast our care upon the Lord, this reward hangeth over our heads, that we tremble and quake even when we take our rest.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Calvin: Act 2:47 - -- 47.Having favor This is the fruit of an innocent life, to find favor even amongst strangers. And yet we need not to doubt of this, but that they were...
47.Having favor This is the fruit of an innocent life, to find favor even amongst strangers. And yet we need not to doubt of this, but that they were hated of many. But although he speak generally of the people, yet he meaneth that part alone which was sound, neither yet infected with any poison of hatred; he signifieth briefly, that the faithful did so behave themselves, that the people did full well like of them for their innocency of life. 160
The Lord added daily He showeth in these words that their diligence was not without profit; they studied so much as in them lay to gather into the Lord’s sheepfold those which wandered and went astray. He saith that their labor bestowed herein was not lost; because the Lord did increase his Church daily. And surely, whereas the Church is rather diminished than increased, that is to be imputed to our slothfulness, or rather forwardness. 161 And although they did all of them stoutly labor to increase the kingdom of Christ, yet Luke ascribeth 162 this honor to God alone, that he brought strangers into the Church. And surely this is his own proper work. For the ministers do no good by planting or watering, unless he make their labor effectual by the power of his Spirit, (1Co 3:0.) Furthermore, we must note that he saith, that those were gathered unto the Church which should be saved. For he teacheth that this is the means to attain salvation, if we be incorporate into the Church. For like as there is no remission of sins, so neither is there any hope of salvation. 163 Furthermore, this is an excellent comfort for all the godly, that they were received into the Church that they might be saved; as the Gospel is called the power of God unto salvation to all that believe, (Rom 1:16.) Now, forasmuch as God doth gather only a part, or a certain number, this grace is restrained unto election, that it may be the first cause of our salvation.
Defender: Act 2:13 - -- This was a sarcastic reference to the fact that the followers of Jesus were well known to eschew drunkenness, and therefore would drink only new wine ...
This was a sarcastic reference to the fact that the followers of Jesus were well known to eschew drunkenness, and therefore would drink only new wine (that is, freshly pressed wine, still unfermented). They could not understand them, and assumed they were speaking gibberish, like drunkards might and so used this as an excuse to mock their stand."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: Act 2:16 - -- Peter here assures these devout Jews that this strange set of phenomena (the wind, the cloven tongues like fire, the preaching in many languages) was ...
Peter here assures these devout Jews that this strange set of phenomena (the wind, the cloven tongues like fire, the preaching in many languages) was not an occult, pagan manifestation of some kind, but an actual fulfillment of an important Old Testament prophecy, as found in Joe 2:28-32."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: Act 2:17 - -- This "last days" prophecy of Joel was fulfilled at Pentecost only in a precursive sense. Its complete fulfillment must await the time of the end (see ...
This "last days" prophecy of Joel was fulfilled at Pentecost only in a precursive sense. Its complete fulfillment must await the time of the end (see its continuation in Joel 3). Thus Peter's statement: "This is that" (Act 2:16) should be understood in the sense of "This is like that.""
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: Act 2:21 - -- This application of Joel's prophecy, as found in Joe 2:32, is valid in both its precursive and final fulfillments. See Paul's use of it in Rom 10:13."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: Act 2:23 - -- Note the juxtaposition here of the doctrines of divine predestination and human responsibility. The full harmony of these paradoxical concepts is beyo...
Note the juxtaposition here of the doctrines of divine predestination and human responsibility. The full harmony of these paradoxical concepts is beyond human comprehension, but both are clearly taught in Scripture and must be received on faith in the infinite understanding of our Creator."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: Act 2:25 - -- At this point in his sermon, Peter makes an extended quotation from the 16th psalm, quoting Psa 16:8-11 (Act 2:25-27) of this remarkable Messianic psa...
At this point in his sermon, Peter makes an extended quotation from the 16th psalm, quoting Psa 16:8-11 (Act 2:25-27) of this remarkable Messianic psalm, which predicts the Gethsemane prayer, then the trial, death, burial, resurrection and ascension of Christ a thousand years before the fulfillment (see notes on Psa 16:1-11)."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: Act 2:26 - -- This was a prophetic glimpse of His brief "rest" in Joseph's tomb, prior to His returning incorruptible from hell ("hades")."
This was a prophetic glimpse of His brief "rest" in Joseph's tomb, prior to His returning incorruptible from hell ("hades")."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: Act 2:27 - -- This remarkable prophecy of Messiah's resurrection was not fulfilled by David, as Peter said (Act 2:29). In fact, Peter and the other disciples could ...
This remarkable prophecy of Messiah's resurrection was not fulfilled by David, as Peter said (Act 2:29). In fact, Peter and the other disciples could not even understand Jesus' straightforward promises of His coming death and resurrection, let alone the Messianic prophecies of the Old Testament. But when the event finally occurred, and the Holy Spirit came to indwell and teach them, Peter and the others became powerful expositors of the Scriptures, especially of the Messianic prophecies."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: Act 2:34 - -- See notes on Psa 110:1-7, from which Peter quoted. This prophecy records a remarkable conversation between two persons of the Godhead, implying the re...
See notes on Psa 110:1-7, from which Peter quoted. This prophecy records a remarkable conversation between two persons of the Godhead, implying the rejection of one by His foes on earth, followed by His return to heaven for a time."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: Act 2:36 - -- Jesus was the human name of the Savior, ordained by God Himself (Mat 1:21). "Christ," meaning "Messiah" or "Anointed One," is the title representing H...
Jesus was the human name of the Savior, ordained by God Himself (Mat 1:21). "Christ," meaning "Messiah" or "Anointed One," is the title representing His three-fold office as Prophet, Priest and King - first of Israel, then of all nations. To those who are His own followers and servants, He is also their Lord (Rom 10:9). Thus His full name to those who know Him, is Lord Jesus Christ."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: Act 2:38 - -- Peter's message was climaxed with essentially the same exhortation as preached by John the Baptist - "the baptism of repentance for the remission of s...
Peter's message was climaxed with essentially the same exhortation as preached by John the Baptist - "the baptism of repentance for the remission of sins" (Luk 3:3). The difference is that now - and ever since - both repentance and baptism are to be "in the name of Jesus Christ." This, of course, implies faith in Christ as the only one who can provide remission of sins. Repentance toward God and faith toward Christ are like two sides of the same coin, each of which implies and requires the other. The full meaning of baptism in water also had now become evident, testifying of the baptism of the Spirit, as well as the death and resurrection of Christ. It is not that baptism is required for remission of sins (note, for example, the thief on the cross), but rather that baptism is always inseparably associated in Scripture with true repentance and faith."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: Act 2:39 - -- This would seem to indicate that Peter understood that the gospel message was for all nations, not just the Jews (in fact, Jesus had been quite explic...
This would seem to indicate that Peter understood that the gospel message was for all nations, not just the Jews (in fact, Jesus had been quite explicit about this when He gave the Great Commission). However, Peter did not understand at this time that converts did not have to come to Christ by way of Judaism."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: Act 2:41 - -- That three thousand people could be baptized in one day has been doubted by some. This was a remarkable response to Peter's preaching - preceded and s...
That three thousand people could be baptized in one day has been doubted by some. This was a remarkable response to Peter's preaching - preceded and stimulated, of course, by Christ's resurrection and the miraculous manifestations of the Holy Spirit. But it was certainly not impossible. Assuming that the 120 disciples who had received the baptism of the Holy Spirit had already been baptized in water, either by John, John's disciples, or Jesus' disciples, it would be reasonable to assume that at least half of that company were able to perform the baptismal ceremony. There were a number of brooks and pools in the city of Jerusalem, so sixty disciples performing fifty baptisms each would be quite feasible, and would only take about four hours.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: Act 2:41 - -- The precedent set on the day of Pentecost seems to indicate that the new converts should be baptized as soon as they have truly repented and believed ...
The precedent set on the day of Pentecost seems to indicate that the new converts should be baptized as soon as they have truly repented and believed in the name of Jesus Christ. Delaying baptism or ignoring it altogether is clearly unscriptural."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Defender: Act 2:47 - -- This is the first mention of the "church" in Acts; the context indicates that the reference is to the visible body of believers in Jerusalem, function...
This is the first mention of the "church" in Acts; the context indicates that the reference is to the visible body of believers in Jerusalem, functioning as described in Act 2:44-47."
TSK -> Act 2:13; Act 2:14; Act 2:15; Act 2:16; Act 2:17; Act 2:18; Act 2:19; Act 2:20; Act 2:21; Act 2:22; Act 2:23; Act 2:24; Act 2:25; Act 2:26; Act 2:27; Act 2:28; Act 2:29; Act 2:30; Act 2:31; Act 2:32; Act 2:33; Act 2:34; Act 2:35; Act 2:36; Act 2:37; Act 2:38; Act 2:39; Act 2:40; Act 2:41; Act 2:42; Act 2:43; Act 2:44; Act 2:45; Act 2:46; Act 2:47
TSK: Act 2:13 - -- These : Act 2:15; 1Sa 1:14; Job 32:19; Son 7:9; Isa 25:6; Zec 9:15, Zec 9:17, Zec 10:7; Eph 5:18
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:14 - -- with : Act 1:26
lifted : Isa 40:9, Isa 52:8, Isa 58:1; Hos 8:1
Ye men : Act 2:22, Act 5:35, Act 13:16, Act 21:28
hearken : Act 7:2; Deu 27:9; Pro 8:32...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:17 - -- in : Gen 49:1; Isa 2:2; Dan 10:14; Hos 3:5; Mic 4:1; Heb 1:2; Jam 5:3; 2Pe 3:3
I will : Act 10:45; Psa 72:6; Pro 1:23; Isa 32:15, Isa 32:16, Isa 44:3;...
in : Gen 49:1; Isa 2:2; Dan 10:14; Hos 3:5; Mic 4:1; Heb 1:2; Jam 5:3; 2Pe 3:3
I will : Act 10:45; Psa 72:6; Pro 1:23; Isa 32:15, Isa 32:16, Isa 44:3; Eze 11:19, Eze 36:25-27; Eze 39:29; Zec 12:10; Joh 7:39; Tit 3:4-6
all : Gen 6:12; Psa 65:2; Isa 40:5, Isa 49:26, Isa 66:23; Zec 2:13; Luk 3:6; Joh 17:2
your sons : Act 11:28, Act 21:9; 1Co 12:10,1Co 12:28, 1Co 14:26-31
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:20 - -- sun : Isa 13:9, Isa 13:15, Isa 24:23; Jer 4:23; Amo 8:9; Mat 24:29, Mat 27:45; Mar 13:24; Luk 21:25; 2Pe 3:7, 2Pe 3:10; Rev 6:12, Rev 16:8
great : Isa...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:21 - -- whosoever : Act 9:11, Act 9:15, Act 22:16; Psa 86:5; Joe 2:32; Mat 28:19; Rom 10:12, Rom 10:13; 1Co 1:2; Heb 4:16
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:22 - -- men : Act 3:12, Act 5:35, Act 13:16, Act 21:28; Isa 41:14
Jesus : Act 4:10, Act 6:14, Act 22:8, Act 24:5, Act 26:9; Mat 2:23; Joh 1:45, Joh 19:19
a ma...
men : Act 3:12, Act 5:35, Act 13:16, Act 21:28; Isa 41:14
Jesus : Act 4:10, Act 6:14, Act 22:8, Act 24:5, Act 26:9; Mat 2:23; Joh 1:45, Joh 19:19
a man : Act 10:37, Act 26:26; Mat 11:2-6; Luk 7:20-23, Luk 24:18; Joh 3:2, Joh 5:36, Joh 6:14, Joh 6:27; Joh 7:31, Joh 10:37, Joh 11:47, Joh 12:17, Joh 14:10,Joh 14:11, Joh 15:24; Heb 2:4
which : Act 14:27; Mat 9:8, Mat 12:28; Luk 11:20; Joh 5:17-20, Joh 9:33, Joh 11:40-42, Joh 14:10,Joh 14:11
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:23 - -- being : Act 3:18, Act 4:28, Act 13:27, Act 15:18; Psa 76:10; Isa 10:6, Isa 10:7, Isa 46:10,Isa 46:11; Dan 4:35; Dan 9:24-27; Mat 26:24; Luk 22:22, Luk...
being : Act 3:18, Act 4:28, Act 13:27, Act 15:18; Psa 76:10; Isa 10:6, Isa 10:7, Isa 46:10,Isa 46:11; Dan 4:35; Dan 9:24-27; Mat 26:24; Luk 22:22, Luk 22:37, Luk 24:44-46; Joh 19:24, Joh 19:31-37; Rom 4:17, Rom 11:33-36; 1Pe 1:20, 1Pe 2:8; Jud 1:4; Rev 13:8
ye have : Act 3:13-15, Act 4:10,Act 4:11, Act 5:30, Act 7:52; Gen 50:20; Mat 27:20-25
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:24 - -- God : Act 2:32, Act 3:15, Act 3:26, Act 10:40,Act 10:41, Act 13:30,Act 13:34, Act 17:31; Mat 27:63; Luke 24:1-53; Joh 2:19-21, Joh 10:18; Rom 4:24, Ro...
God : Act 2:32, Act 3:15, Act 3:26, Act 10:40,Act 10:41, Act 13:30,Act 13:34, Act 17:31; Mat 27:63; Luke 24:1-53; Joh 2:19-21, Joh 10:18; Rom 4:24, Rom 6:4, Rom 8:11, Rom 8:34, Rom 14:9; 1Co 6:14, 1Co 15:12; 2Co 4:14; Gal 1:1; Eph 1:20; Col 2:12; 1Th 1:10; Heb 13:20; 1Pe 1:21
loosed : Psa 116:3, Psa 116:4, Psa 116:16
because : Act 1:16; Isa 25:8, Isa 26:19, Isa 53:10; Hos 13:14; Luk 24:46; Joh 10:35, Joh 12:39; Heb 2:14; Rev 1:18
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:25 - -- David : Act 2:29, Act 2:30, Act 13:32-36
I foresaw : Psa 16:8-11
for : Psa 73:23, Psa 109:31, Psa 110:5; Isa 41:13, Isa 50:7-9; Joh 16:32
I should not...
David : Act 2:29, Act 2:30, Act 13:32-36
I foresaw : Psa 16:8-11
for : Psa 73:23, Psa 109:31, Psa 110:5; Isa 41:13, Isa 50:7-9; Joh 16:32
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:27 - -- leave : Psa 49:15, Psa 86:13, Psa 116:3; Luk 16:23; 1Co 15:55; Rev 1:18, Rev 20:13
thine : Act 3:14, Act 4:27; Psa 89:19; Mar 1:24; Luk 1:35, Luk 4:34...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:28 - -- made : Psa 16:11, Psa 21:4, Psa 25:4; Pro 2:19, Pro 8:20; Joh 11:25, Joh 11:26, Joh 14:6
make : Psa 4:6, Psa 4:7, Psa 17:15, Psa 21:6, Psa 42:5; Heb 1...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:29 - -- let me : or, I may
freely : Act 26:26
the patriarch : Act 7:8, Act 7:9; Heb 7:4
David : Act 13:36; 1Ki 2:10
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:30 - -- being : Act 1:16; 2Sa 23:2; Mat 27:35; Mar 12:36; Luk 24:44; Heb 3:7, Heb 4:7; 2Pe 1:21
knowing : 2Sa 7:11-16; 1Ch 17:11-15; Psa 89:3, Psa 89:4, 19-37...
being : Act 1:16; 2Sa 23:2; Mat 27:35; Mar 12:36; Luk 24:44; Heb 3:7, Heb 4:7; 2Pe 1:21
knowing : 2Sa 7:11-16; 1Ch 17:11-15; Psa 89:3, Psa 89:4, 19-37, Psa 110:1-5, Psa 132:11-18; Rom 1:3; 2Ti 2:8; Heb 7:1, Heb 7:2, Heb 7:21
with : Heb 6:17
he : Psa 2:6-12, 72:1-19; Isa 7:14, Isa 9:6, Isa 9:7; Jer 23:5, Jer 23:6, Jer 33:14, Jer 33:15; Amo 9:11, Amo 9:12; Mic 5:2; Luk 1:31-33, Luk 1:69, Luk 1:70, Luk 2:10,Luk 2:11; Joh 18:36, Joh 18:37; Rom 15:12; Rev 17:14, Rev 19:16
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:32 - -- whereof : Act 2:24, Act 1:8, Act 1:22, Act 3:15, Act 4:33, Act 5:31, Act 5:32, Act 10:39-41; Luk 24:46-48; Joh 15:27; Joh 20:26-31
whereof : Act 2:24, Act 1:8, Act 1:22, Act 3:15, Act 4:33, Act 5:31, Act 5:32, Act 10:39-41; Luk 24:46-48; Joh 15:27; Joh 20:26-31
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:33 - -- by : Act 5:31; Psa 89:19, Psa 89:24, Psa 118:16, Psa 118:22, Psa 118:23; Isa 52:13, Isa 53:12; Mat 28:18; Mar 16:19; Joh 17:5; Eph 1:20-23; Phi 2:9-11...
by : Act 5:31; Psa 89:19, Psa 89:24, Psa 118:16, Psa 118:22, Psa 118:23; Isa 52:13, Isa 53:12; Mat 28:18; Mar 16:19; Joh 17:5; Eph 1:20-23; Phi 2:9-11; Heb 1:2-4, Heb 10:12; 1Pe 1:21, 1Pe 3:22
having : Act 1:4; Luk 24:49; Joh 7:38, Joh 7:39, Joh 14:16, Joh 14:26, Joh 15:26, Joh 16:7-15
he : Act 2:17, Act 2:38, Act 2:39, Act 10:45; Rom 5:5; Eph 4:8; Tit 3:6
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:34 - -- The Lord : Psa 110:1; Mat 22:42-45; Mar 12:36; Luk 20:42, Luk 20:43; 1Co 15:25; Eph 1:22; Heb 1:13
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:35 - -- thy foes : Gen 3:15; Jos 10:24, Jos 10:25; Psa 2:8-12, Psa 18:40-42, Psa 21:8-12, Psa 72:9; Isa 49:23; Isa 59:18, Isa 60:14, Isa 63:4-6; Luk 19:27, Lu...
thy foes : Gen 3:15; Jos 10:24, Jos 10:25; Psa 2:8-12, Psa 18:40-42, Psa 21:8-12, Psa 72:9; Isa 49:23; Isa 59:18, Isa 60:14, Isa 63:4-6; Luk 19:27, Luk 20:16-18; Rom 16:20; Rev 19:19-21; Rev 20:1-3, Rev 20:8-15
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:36 - -- all : Jer 2:4, Jer 9:26, Jer 31:31, Jer 33:14; Eze 34:30, Eze 39:25-29; Zec 13:1; Rom 9:3-6
that same : Act 2:22, Act 2:23, Act 4:11, Act 4:12, Act 5:...
all : Jer 2:4, Jer 9:26, Jer 31:31, Jer 33:14; Eze 34:30, Eze 39:25-29; Zec 13:1; Rom 9:3-6
that same : Act 2:22, Act 2:23, Act 4:11, Act 4:12, Act 5:30,Act 5:31, Act 10:36-42; Psa 2:1-8; Mat 28:18-20; Joh 3:35, Joh 3:36, Joh 5:22-29; Rom 14:8-12; 2Co 5:10; 2Th 1:7-10
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:37 - -- they : Act 5:33, Act 7:54; Eze 7:16; Zec 12:10; Luk 3:10; Joh 8:9, Joh 16:8-11; Rom 7:9; 1Co 14:24, 1Co 14:25; Heb 4:12, Heb 4:13
Men : Act 1:16
what ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:38 - -- Repent : Act 3:19, Act 17:30, Act 20:21, Act 26:20; Mat 3:2, Mat 3:8, Mat 3:9, Mat 4:17, Mat 21:28-32; Luke 15:1-32; Luk 24:47
be : Act 8:36-38, Act 1...
Repent : Act 3:19, Act 17:30, Act 20:21, Act 26:20; Mat 3:2, Mat 3:8, Mat 3:9, Mat 4:17, Mat 21:28-32; Luke 15:1-32; Luk 24:47
be : Act 8:36-38, Act 16:15, Act 16:31-34, Act 22:16; Tit 3:5; 1Pe 3:21
in : Act 8:12, Act 8:16, Act 10:48, Act 19:4, Act 19:5; Mat 28:19; Rom 6:3; 1Co 1:13-17
and ye : Act 2:16-18, Act 8:15-17, Act 10:44, Act 10:45; Isa 32:15, Isa 44:3, Isa 44:4, Isa 59:21; Eze 36:25-27; Eze 39:29; Joe 2:28, Joe 2:29; Zec 12:10
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:39 - -- the promise : Act 3:25, Act 3:26; Gen 17:7, Gen 17:8; Psa 115:14, Psa 115:15; Jer 32:39, Jer 32:40; Eze 37:25; Joe 2:28; Rom 11:16, Rom 11:17; 1Co 7:1...
the promise : Act 3:25, Act 3:26; Gen 17:7, Gen 17:8; Psa 115:14, Psa 115:15; Jer 32:39, Jer 32:40; Eze 37:25; Joe 2:28; Rom 11:16, Rom 11:17; 1Co 7:14
and to all : Act 10:45, Act 11:15-18, Act 14:27, Act 15:3, Act 15:8, Act 15:14; Isa 59:19; Eph 2:13-22, Eph 3:5-8
as many : Joe 2:32; Rom 8:30, Rom 9:24, Rom 11:29; Eph 1:18, Eph 4:4; 2Th 1:11, 2Th 2:13, 2Th 2:14; 2Ti 1:9; Heb 3:1, Heb 9:15; 1Pe 5:10; 2Pe 1:3, 2Pe 1:10; Rev 17:14, Rev 19:9
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:40 - -- with : Act 15:32, Act 20:2, Act 20:9, Act 20:11, Act 28:23; Joh 21:25
did : Act 10:42, Act 20:21, Act 20:24; Gal 5:3; Eph 4:17; 1Th 2:11; 1Pe 5:12
Sav...
with : Act 15:32, Act 20:2, Act 20:9, Act 20:11, Act 28:23; Joh 21:25
did : Act 10:42, Act 20:21, Act 20:24; Gal 5:3; Eph 4:17; 1Th 2:11; 1Pe 5:12
Save : Num 16:28-34; Pro 9:6; Luk 21:36; 2Co 5:20, 2Co 6:17; 1Ti 4:16; Heb 3:12, Heb 3:13; Jam 4:8-10; Rev 3:17-19, Rev 18:4, Rev 18:5
untoward : Mat 3:7-10, Mat 12:34, Mat 16:4, Mat 17:17, Mat 23:33; Mar 8:38
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:41 - -- gladly : Act 2:37, Act 8:6-8, Act 13:48, Act 16:31-34; Mat 13:44-46; Gal 4:14, Gal 4:15; 1Th 1:6
were baptized : Act 2:38
added : Act 2:47, Act 1:15, ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:42 - -- they : Act 2:46, Act 11:23, Act 14:22; Mar 4:16, Mar 4:17; Joh 8:31, Joh 8:32; 1Co 11:2; Gal 1:6; Eph 2:20; Col 1:23; 2Ti 3:14; Heb 10:39; 2Pe 3:1, 2P...
they : Act 2:46, Act 11:23, Act 14:22; Mar 4:16, Mar 4:17; Joh 8:31, Joh 8:32; 1Co 11:2; Gal 1:6; Eph 2:20; Col 1:23; 2Ti 3:14; Heb 10:39; 2Pe 3:1, 2Pe 3:2, 2Pe 3:17, 2Pe 3:18; 1Jo 2:19
fellowship : Act 4:23, Act 5:12-14; 1Jo 1:3, 1Jo 1:7
in breaking : Act 20:7, Act 20:11; 1Co 10:16, 1Co 10:17, 1Co 10:21, 1Co 11:20-26
and in prayers : Act 1:14, Act 4:31, Act 6:4; Rom 12:12; Eph 6:18; Col 4:2; Heb 10:25; Jud 1:20
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:43 - -- fear : Act 5:11, Act 5:13; Est 8:17; Jer 33:9; Hos 3:5; Luk 7:16, Luk 8:37
many : Act 3:6-9, Act 4:33, Act 5:12, Act 5:15, Act 5:16, Act 9:34, Act 9:4...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:44 - -- had : Act 4:32, Act 5:4, Act 6:1-3; 2Co 8:9, 2Co 8:14, 2Co 8:15, 2Co 9:6-15; 1Jo 3:16-18
had : Act 4:32, Act 5:4, Act 6:1-3; 2Co 8:9, 2Co 8:14, 2Co 8:15, 2Co 9:6-15; 1Jo 3:16-18
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:45 - -- sold : Act 4:34-37, Act 5:1, Act 5:2, Act 11:29; Luk 12:33, Luk 12:34, Luk 16:9, Luk 18:22, Luk 19:8
parted : Psa 112:9; Pro 11:24, Pro 11:25, Pro 19:...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:46 - -- daily : Act 1:14, Act 3:1, Act 5:42; Luk 24:53
breaking : Act 2:42, Act 20:7
from house to house : or, at house, Act 1:13; 1Co 11:20-22
did : Act 16:3...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
TSK: Act 2:47 - -- having : Act 4:21, Act 4:33; Luk 2:52, Luk 19:48; Rom 14:18
the Lord : Act 2:39, Act 5:14, Act 11:24, Act 13:48; Rom 8:30, Rom 9:27, Rom 11:5-7; Tit 3...
![](images/cmt_minus_head.gif)
collapse allCommentary -- Word/Phrase Notes (per Verse)
Barnes -> Act 2:13; Act 2:14; Act 2:15; Act 2:16; Act 2:17; Act 2:18; Act 2:19; Act 2:20; Act 2:21; Act 2:22; Act 2:23; Act 2:24; Act 2:25; Act 2:26; Act 2:27; Act 2:28; Act 2:29; Act 2:30; Act 2:31; Act 2:32; Act 2:33; Act 2:34-35; Act 2:36; Act 2:37; Act 2:38; Act 2:39; Act 2:40; Act 2:41; Act 2:42; Act 2:43; Act 2:44; Act 2:45; Act 2:46; Act 2:47
Barnes: Act 2:13 - -- Others, mocking, said - The word rendered "mocking"means "to cavil, to deride."It occurs in the New Testament in only one other place: Act 17:3...
Others, mocking, said - The word rendered "mocking"means "to cavil, to deride."It occurs in the New Testament in only one other place: Act 17:32, "And when they heard of the resurrection of the dead, some mocked."This was an effect that was not confined to the day of Pentecost. There has seldom been a revival of religion, a remarkable manifestation of the power of the Holy Spirit, that has not given occasion for profane mockery and merriment. One characteristic of wicked people is to deride those things which are done to promote their own welfare. Hence, the Saviour himself was mocked; and the efforts of Christians to save others have been the subject of derision. Derision, and mockery, and a jeer, have been far more effectual in deterring people from becoming Christians than any attempts at sober argument. God will treat people as they treat him, Psa 18:26. And hence, he says to the wicked, "Because I have called and ye refused ...but ye have set at naught my counsel; I also will laugh at your calamity, I will mock when your fear cometh,"Pro 1:24-26.
These men are full of new wine - These men are drunk. In times of a revival of religion men will have some way of accounting for the effects of the gospel, and the way is commonly about as wise and rational as the one adopted on this occasion. "To escape the absurdity of acknowledging their own ignorance, they adopted the theory that strong drink can teach languages"(Dr. McLelland). In modern times it has been usual to denominate such scenes fanaticism, or wildfire, or enthusiasm. When people fail in argument, it is common to attempt to confute a doctrine or bring reproach upon a transaction by "giving it an ill name."Hence, the names Puritan, Quaker, Methodist, etc., were at first given in derision, to account for some remarkable effect of religion on the world. Compare Mat 11:19; Joh 7:20; Joh 8:48. And thus people endeavor to trace revivals to ungoverned and heated passions, and they are regarded as the mere offspring of fanaticism. The friends of revivals should not be discouraged by this; but they should remember that the very first revival of religion was by many supposed to be the effect of a drunken frolic.
New wine -
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:14 - -- But Peter - This was in accordance with the natural temperament of Peter. He was bold, forward, ardent; and he rose now to defend the apostles ...
But Peter - This was in accordance with the natural temperament of Peter. He was bold, forward, ardent; and he rose now to defend the apostles of Jesus Christ, and Christ himself, from an injurious charge. Not daunted by ridicule or opposition, he felt that now was the time for preaching the gospel to the crowd that had been assembled by curiosity. No ridicule should deter Christians from an honest avowal of their opinions, and a defense of the operations of the Holy Spirit.
With the eleven - Matthias was now one of the apostles, and now appeared as one of the witnesses for the truth. They probably all arose, and took part in the discourse. Possibly Peter began to discourse, and either all spoke together in different languages, or one succeeded another.
Ye men of Judea - People who are Jews; that is, Jews by birth. The original does not mean that they were permanent dwellers in Judea, but that they were Jews, of Jewish families. Literally, "men, Jews."
And all ye that dwell ... - All others besides native-born Jews, whether proselytes or strangers, who were abiding at Jerusalem. This comprised, of course, the whole assembly, and was a respectful and conciliatory introduction to his discourse. Though they had mocked them, yet he treated them with respect, and did not render railing for railing 1Pe 3:9, but sought to convince them of their error.
Be this known ... - Peter did not intimate that this was a doubtful matter, or one that could not be explained. His address was respectful, yet firm. He proceeded calmly to show them their error. When the enemies of religion deride us or the gospel, we should answer them kindly and respectfully, yet firmly. We should reason with them coolly, and convince them of their error, Pro 15:1. In this case Peter acted on the principle which he afterward enjoined on all, 1Pe 3:15, "Be ready always to give an answer to every man that asketh you a reason of the hope that is in you, with meekness and fear."The design of Peter was to vindicate the conduct of the apostles from the reproach of intoxication; to show that this could be no other than the work of God; and to make an application of the truth to his hearers. This he did:
(1) By showing that this could not be reasonably supposed to be the effect of new wine, Act 2:15.
(2)\caps1 b\caps0 y showing that what had occurred had been expressly predicted in the writings of the Jewish prophets, Act 2:16-21.
(3)\caps1 b\caps0 y a calm argument, proving the resurrection and ascension of Christ, and showing that this also was in accordance with the Jewish Scriptures, Act 2:22-35. We are not to suppose that this was the whole of Peter’ s discourse, but that these were the topics on which he insisted, and the main points of his argument.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:15 - -- For these are not drunken ... - The word these here includes Peter himself, as well as the others. The charge doubtless extended to all. T...
For these are not drunken ... - The word these here includes Peter himself, as well as the others. The charge doubtless extended to all.
The third hour of the day - The Jews divided their day into twelve equal parts, reckoning from sunrise to sunset. Of course the hours were longer in summer than in winter. The third hour would correspond to our nine o’ clock in the morning. The reasons why it was so improbable that they would be drunk at that time were the following:
(1) It was the hour of morning worship, or sacrifice. It was highly improbable that, at an hour usually devoted to public worship, they would be intoxicated.
\caps1 (2) i\caps0 t was not usual for even drunkards to become drunk in the daytime, 1Th 5:7, "They that be drunken are drunken in the night."
\caps1 (3) t\caps0 he charge was, that they had become drunk with wine. Ardent spirits, or alcohol, that curse of our times, was unknown. It was very improbable that so much of the weak wine commonly used in Judea should have been taken at that early hour as to produce intoxication.
\caps1 (4) i\caps0 t was a regular practice with the Jews not to eat or drink anything until after the third hour of the day, especially on the Sabbath, and on all festival occasions. Sometimes this abstinence was maintained until noon. So universal was this custom, that the apostle could appeal to it with confidence, as a full refutation of the charge of drunkenness at that hour. Even the intemperate were not accustomed to drink before that hour. The following testimonies on this subject from Jewish writers are from Lightfoot: "This was the custom of pious people in ancient times, that each one should offer his morning prayers with additions in the synagogue, and then return home and take refreshment"(Maimonides, Shabb., chapter 30). "They remained in the synagogue until the sixth hour and a half, and then each one offered the prayer of the Minchah before he returned home, and then he ate.""The fourth is the hour of repast, when all eat."One of the Jewish writers says that the difference between thieves and honest men might be known by the fact that the former might be seen in the morning at the fourth hour eating and sleeping, and holding a cup in his hand. But for those who made pretensions to religion, as the apostles did, such a thing was altogether improbable.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:16 - -- This is that - This is the fulfillment of that, or this was predicted. This was the second part of Peter’ s argument, to show that this wa...
This is that - This is the fulfillment of that, or this was predicted. This was the second part of Peter’ s argument, to show that this was in accordance with the predictions in their own Scriptures.
By the prophet Joel - Joe 2:28-32. This is not quoted literally, either from the Hebrew or the Septuagint. The substance, however, is preserved.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:17 - -- It shall come to pass - It shall happen, or shall occur. In the last days - Hebrew, Chaldee, Syriac, and Arabic, after these things, or a...
It shall come to pass - It shall happen, or shall occur.
In the last days - Hebrew, Chaldee, Syriac, and Arabic, after these things, or afterward. The expression the last days, however, occurs frequently in the Old Testament: Gen 49:1, Jacob called his sons, that he might tell them what should happen to them in the last days, that is, in future times - Heb. in after times; Mic 4:1, "In the last days (Hebrew: in later times) the mountain of the Lord’ s house,"etc.; Isa 2:2, "in the last days the mountain of the Lord’ s house shall be established in the tops of the mountains,"etc. The expression then properly denoted "the future times"in general. But, as the coming of the Messiah was to the eye of a Jew the most important event in the coming ages - the great, glorious, and crowning scene in all the vast futurity, the phrase came to be regarded as properly expressive of that. It stood in opposition to the usual denomination of earlier times.
It was a phrase in contrast with the days of the patriarchs, the kings, the prophets, etc. The last days, or the closing period of the world, were the days of the Messiah. It does not appear from this, and it certainly is not implied in the expression, that they supposed the world would then come to an end. Their views were just the contrary. They anticipated a long and glorious time under the dominion of the Messiah, and to this expectation they were led by the promise that his kingdom should be forever; that of the increase of his government there should be no end, etc. This expression was understood by the writers of the New Testament as referring undoubtedly to the times of the gospel. And hence they often used it as denoting that the time of the expected Messiah had come, but not to imply that the world was drawing near to an end: Heb 1:2, "God hath spoken in these last days by his Son"; 1Pe 1:20, "Was manifested in these last times for you"; 2Pe 3:3; 1Pe 1:5; 1Jo 2:18, "Little children, it is the last time,"etc.; Jud 1:18. The expression the last day is applied by our Saviour to the resurrection and the day of judgment, Joh 6:39-40, Joh 6:44-45; Joh 11:24; Joh 12:48. Here the expression means simply "in those future times, when the Messiah shall have come."
I will pour out of my Spirit - The expression in Hebrew is, "I will pour out my Spirit."The word "pour"is commonly applied to water or to blood, "to pour it out,"or "to shed it,"Isa 57:6; to tears, "to pour them out,"that is,"to weep, etc., Psa 42:4; 1Sa 1:15. It is applied to water, to wine, or to blood, in the New Testament, Mat 9:17; Rev 16:1; Act 22:20, "The blood of thy martyr Stephen was shed."It conveys also the idea of "communicating largely or freely,"as water is poured freely from a fountain, Tit 3:5-6, "The renewing of the Holy Spirit, which he shed on us abundantly."Thus, Job 36:27, "They (the clouds) pour down rain according to the vapor thereof"; Isa 44:3, "I will pour water on him that is thirsty"; Isa 45:8, "Let the skies pour down righteousness"; Mal 3:10, "I will pour you out a blessing."It is also applied to fury and anger, when God intends to say that he will not spare, but will signally punish, Psa 69:24; Jer 10:25. It is not infrequently applied to the Spirit, Pro 1:23; Isa 44:3; Zec 12:10. As thus used it means that he will bestow large measures of spiritual influences. As the Spirit renews and sanctifies people, so to pour out the Spirit is to grant freely his influences to renew and sanctify the soul.
My Spirit - The Spirit here denotes the Third Person of the Trinity, promised by the Saviour, and sent to finish his work, and apply it to people. The Holy Spirit is regarded as the source or conveyer of all the blessings which Christians experience. Hence, he renews the heart, Joh 3:5-6. He is the source of all proper feelings and principles in Christians, or he produces the Christian graces, Gal 5:22-25; Tit 3:5-7. The spread and success of the gospel is attributed to him, Isa 32:15-16. Miraculous gifts are traced to him, especially the various gifts with which the early Christians were endowed, 1Co 12:4-10. The promise that he would pour out his Spirit means that he would, in the time of the Messiah, impart a large measure of those influences which it was his special province to communicate to people. A part of them were communicated on the day of Pentecost, in the miraculous endowment of the power of speaking foreign languages, in the wisdom of the apostles, and in the conversion of the three thousand,
Upon all flesh - The word "flesh"here means "persons,"or "people."See the notes on Rom 1:3. The word "all"here does not mean every individual, but every class or rank of individuals. It is to be limited to the cases specified immediately. The influences were not to be confined to any one class, but were to be communicated to all kinds of persons - old men, youth, servants, etc. Compare 1Ti 2:1-4.
And your sons and your daughters - Your children. It would seem that females shared in the remarkable influences of the Holy Spirit. Philip the Evangelist had four daughters which did prophesy, Act 21:9. It is probable also that the females of the church of Corinth partook of this gift, though they were forbidden to exercise it in public, 1Co 14:34. The office of prophesying, whatever was meant by that, was not confined to the people among the Jews: Exo 15:20, "Miriam, the prophetess, took a timbrel,"etc.; Jdg 4:4, "Deborah, a prophetess, judged Israel"; 2Ki 22:14. See also Luk 2:36, "There was one Anna, a prophetess,"etc.
Shall prophesy - The word "prophesy"is used in a great variety of senses:
(1) It means to predict or foretell future events, Mat 11:13; Mat 15:7.
\caps1 (2) t\caps0 o divine, to conjecture, to declare as a prophet might, Mat 26:68, "Prophesy who smote thee."
\caps1 (3) t\caps0 o celebrate the praises of God, being under a divine influence, Luk 1:67. This seems to have been a considerable part of the employment in the ancient schools of the prophet, 1Sa 10:5; 1Sa 19:20; 1Sa 30:15.
\caps1 (4) t\caps0 o teach - as no small part of the office of the prophets was to teach the doctrines of religion, Mat 7:22, "Have we not prophesied in thy name?"
\caps1 (5) i\caps0 t denotes, then, in general, "to speak under a divine influence,"whether in foretelling future events, in celebrating the praises of God, in instructing others in the duties of religion, or "in speaking foreign languages under that influence."In this last sense the word is used in the New Testament, to denote those who were miraculously endowed with the power of speaking foreign languages, Act 19:6. The word is also used to denote "teaching, or speaking in intelligible language, in opposition to speaking a foreign tongue,"1Co 14:1-5. In this place it means that they would speak under a divine influence, and is specially applied to the power of speaking in a foreign tongue.
Your young men shall see visions - The will of God in former times was communicated to the prophets in various ways. One was by visions, and hence one of the most usual names of the prophets was seers. The name seer was first given to that class of men, and was superseded by the name prophet, 1Sa 9:9, "He that is now called a prophet was beforetime called a seer"; 1Sa 9:11, 1Sa 9:18-19; 2Sa 24:11; 1Ch 29:29, etc. This name was given from the manner in which the divine will was communicated, which seems to have been by throwing the prophet into an ecstasy, and then by causing the vision, or the appearance of the objects or events to pass before the mind. The prophet looked upon the passing scene, the often splendid diorama as it actually occurred, and recorded it as it appeared to his mind. Hence, he recorded rather the succession of images than the times in which they would occur. These visions occurred sometimes when they were asleep, and sometimes during a prophetic ecstasy, Dan 2:28; Dan 7:1-2, Dan 7:15; Dan 8:2; Eze 11:24; Gen 15:1; Num 12:6; Job 4:13; Job 7:14; Eze 1:1; Eze 8:3.
Often the prophet seemed to be transferred or transported to another place from where he was, and the scene in a distant land or age passed before the mind, Eze 8:3; Eze 40:2; Eze 11:24; Dan 8:2. In this case the distant scene or time passed before the prophet, and he recorded it as it appeared to him. That this did not cease before the times of the gospel is evident: Act 9:10, "To Ananias said the Lord in a vision,"etc.; Act 9:12, "and hath seen in a vision a man named Ananias,"etc.; that is, Paul hath seen Ananias represented to him, though absent; he has had an image of him coming in to him; Act 10:3, Cornelius "saw in a vision evidently an angel of God coming to him,"etc. This was one of the modes by which in former times God made known his will; and the language of the Jews came to express a revelation in this manner. Though there were strictly no visions on the day of Pentecost, yet that was one scene under the great economy of the Messiah under which God would make known his will in a manner as clear as he did to the ancient Jews.
Your old men shall dream dreams - The will of God in former times was made known often in this manner; and there are several instances recorded in which it was done under the gospel. God informed Abimelech in a dream that Sarah was the wife of Abraham, Gen 20:3. He spoke to Jacob in a dream, Gen 31:11; to Laban, Gen 31:24; to Joseph, Gen 37:5; to the butler and baker, Gen 40:5; to Pharaoh, Gen 41:1-7; to Solomon, 1Ki 3:5; to Daniel, Dan 2:3; Dan 7:1. It was prophesied by Moses that in this way God would make known his will, Num 12:6. It occurred even in the times of the gospel. Joseph was warned in a dream, Mat 1:20; Mat 2:12-13, Mat 2:19, Mat 2:22. Pilate’ s wife was also troubled in this manner about the conduct of the Jews to Christ, Mat 27:19. As this was one way in which the will of God was made known formerly to people, so the expression here denotes simply that His will would be made known; that it would be one characteristic of the times of the gospel that God would reveal Himself to mankind. The ancients probably had some mode of determining whether their dreams were divine communications, or whether they were, as they are now, the mere erratic wanderings of the mind when unrestrained and unchecked by the will. At present no confidence is to be put in dreams. Compare the introduction to Isaiah, section 7, 12.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:18 - -- And on my servants - The Hebrew text in Joel is "upon the servants."The Septuagint and the Latin Vulgate, however, render it "on my servants."I...
And on my servants - The Hebrew text in Joel is "upon the servants."The Septuagint and the Latin Vulgate, however, render it "on my servants."In Joel, the prophet would seem to be enumerating the different conditions and ranks of society. The influences of the Spirit would be confined to no class; they would descend on old and young, and even on servants and handmaids. So the Chaldee Paraphrase understood it. But the Septuagint and Peter evidently understood it in the sense of servants of God, as the worshippers of God are often called servants in the Scriptures. See Rom 1:1. It is possible, however, that Joel intended to refer to the servants of God. It is not "upon your servants,"etc., as in the former expression, "your sons,"etc.; but the form is changed, "upon servants and handmaids."The language, therefore, will admit the construction of the Septuagint and of Peter; and it was this variation in the original Hebrew which suggested, doubtless, the mention of "my servants,"etc., instead of your servants.
And on my handmaids - Female servants. The name is several times given to pious women, Psa 86:16; Psa 116:16; Luk 1:38, Luk 1:48. The meaning of this verse does not materially differ from the former. In the times of the gospel, those who were brought under its influence would be remarkably endowed with ability to declare the will of God.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:19 - -- I will show wonders - Literally, "I will give signs"- δώσω τέρατα dōsō terata . The word in the Hebrew, מופתים ...
I will show wonders - Literally, "I will give signs"-
Much of the difficulty of interpreting these verses consists in affixing the proper meaning to the expression "that great and notable day of the Lord."If it be limited to the day of Pentecost, it is certain that no such events occurred at that time. But there is, it is believed, no propriety in confining it to that time. The description here pertains to "the last days"Act 2:17; that is, to the whole of that period of duration, however long, which was known by the prophets as "the last times."That period might be extended through many centuries; and during that period all these events would take place. The day of the Lord is the day when God will manifest himself in a special manner; a day when he will so strikingly be seen in his wonders and his judgments that it may be called his day. Thus, it is applied to the day of judgment as the day of the Son of man; the day in which he will be the great attractive object, and will be signally glorified, Luk 17:24; 1Th 5:2; Phi 1:6; 2Pe 3:12. If, as I suppose, "that notable day of the Lord"here refers to that future time when God will manifest himself in judgment, then we are not to suppose that Peter meant to say that these "wonders"would take place on the day of Pentecost, or had their fulfillment then, "but would occur under that indefinite period called "the last days,"the days of the Messiah, and before that period Was closed by the great day of the Lord."The gift of tongues was a partial fulfillment of the general prophecy pertaining to those times. And as the prophecy was thus partially fulfilled, it was a pledge that it would be entirely; and thus there was laid a foundation for the necessity of repentance, and for calling on the Lord in order to be saved.
Blood - Blood is commonly used as an emblem of slaughter or of battle.
Fire - Fire is also an image of war, or the conflagration of towns and dwellings in time of war.
Vapour of smoke - The word "vapor,"
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:20 - -- The sun shall be turned into darkness - See the notes on Mat 24:29. The same images used here with reference to the sun and moon are used also ...
The sun shall be turned into darkness - See the notes on Mat 24:29. The same images used here with reference to the sun and moon are used also there: They occur not infrequently, Mar 13:24; 2Pe 3:7-10. The shining of the sun is an emblem of prosperity; the withdrawing, the eclipse, or the setting of the sun is an emblem of calamity, and is often thus need in the Scriptures, Isa 60:20; Jer 15:9; Eze 32:7; Amo 8:9; Rev 6:12; Rev 8:12; Rev 9:2; Rev 16:8. To say that the sun is darkened, or turned into darkness, is an image of calamity, and especially of the calamities of war, when the smoke of burning cities rises to heaven and obscures his light. This is not, therefore, to be taken literally, nor does it afford any indication of what will be at the end of the world in regard to the sun.
The moon into blood - The word "blood"here means that obscure, sanguinary color which the moon has when the atmosphere is filled with smoke and vapor, and especially the lurid and alarming appearance which it assumes when smoke and flames are thrown up by earthquakes and fiery eruptions, Rev 6:12, "And I beheld when he had opened the sixth seal, and lo, there was a great earthquake, and the sun became black as sackcloth of hair, and the moon became as blood,"Rev 8:8. In this place it denotes great calamities. The figures used are indicative of wars, and conflagrations, and earthquakes. As these things are Matt. 24 applied to the destruction of Jerusalem; as they actually occurred previous to that event (see the notes on Matt. 24), it may be supposed that the prophecy in Joel had an immediate reference to that. The meaning of the quotation by Peter in this place therefore is, that what occurred on the day of Pentecost was the beginning of the serges of wonders that was to take place during the times of the Messiah. It is not intimated that those scenes were to close or to be exhausted in that age. They may precede that great day of the Lord which is yet to come in view of the whole earth.
That great and notable day of the Lord - This is called the great day of the Lord, because on that day he will be signally manifested, more impressively and strikingly than on other times. The word "notable,"
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:21 - -- Whosoever shall call - In the midst of these wonders and dangers, whosoever should call on the Lord should be delivered (Joel). The name of the...
Whosoever shall call - In the midst of these wonders and dangers, whosoever should call on the Lord should be delivered (Joel). The name of the Lord is the same as the Lord himself. It is a Hebraism, signifying to call on the Lord, Psa 79:6; Zec 13:9.
Shall be saved - In Hebrew, shall be delivered, that is, from impending calamities. When they threaten, and God is coming forth to judge them, it shall be that those who are characterized as those who call on the Lord shall be delivered. This is equally true at all times. It is remarkable that no Christians perished in the siege of Jerusalem. Though more than a million of Jews perished, yet the followers of Christ who were there, having been warned by him, when they saw the signs of the Romans approaching, withdrew to Aelia, and were preserved. So it shall be in the day of judgment. All whose character it has been that "they called on God"will then be saved. While the wicked will then call on the rocks and the mountains to shelter them from the Lord, those who have invoked his favor and mercy will find deliverance. The use which Peter makes of this passage is this: Calamities were about to come; the day of judgment was approaching; they were passing through the last days of the earth’ s history, and therefore it became them to call on the name of the Lord, and to obtain deliverance from the dangers which impended over the guilty. There can be little doubt that Peter intended to apply this to the Messiah, and that by the name of the Lord he meant the Lord Jesus. See 1Co 1:2. Paul makes the same use of the passage, expressly applying it to the Lord Jesus Christ, Rom 10:13-14. In Joel, the word translated "Lord"is
This verse teaches us:
1. That in prospect of the judgments of God which are to come, we should make preparation. We shall be called to pass through the closing scenes of this earth; the time when the sun shall be turned into darkness, and the moon into blood, and when the great day of the Lord shall come.
2. It is easy to be saved. All that God requires of us is to call upon him, to pray to him, and he will answer and save. If people will not do so easy a thing as to call on God, and ask him for salvation, it is obviously proper that they should be cast off. The terms of salvation could not be made plainer or easier. The offer is wide, free, universal, and there is no obstacle but what exists in the heart of the sinner.
And from this part of Peter’ s vindication of the scene on the day of Pentecost we may learn also:
1. That revivals of religion are to be expected as a part of the history of the Christian church. He speaks of God’ s pouring out his Spirit, etc., as what was to take place in the last days, that is, in the indefinite and large tract of time which was to come, under the administration of the Messiah. His remarks are by no means limited to the day of Pentecost. They are as applicable to future periods as to that time; and we are to expect it as a part of Christian history, that the Holy Spirit will be sent down to awaken and convert people.
2. This will also vindicate revivals from all the changes which have ever been brought against them. All the objections of irregularity, extravagance, wildfire, enthusiasm, disorder, etc., which have been alleged against revivals in modern times, might have been brought with equal propriety against the scene on the day of Pentecost. Yet an apostle showed that that was in accordance with the predictions of the Old Testament, and was an undoubted work of the Holy Spirit. If that work could be vindicated, then modern revivals may be. If that was really liable to no objections on these accounts, then modern works of grace should not be objected to for the same things. And if that excited deep interest in the apostles; if they felt deep concern to vindicate it from the charge brought against it, then Christians and Christian ministers now should feel similar solicitude to defend revivals, and not be found among their revilers, their calumniators, or their foes. There will be enemies enough of the work of the Holy Spirit without the aid of professed Christians, and that man possesses no enviable feelings or character who is found with the enemies of God and his Christ in opposing the mighty work of the Holy Spirit on the human heart.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:22 - -- Ye men of Israel - Descendants of Israel or Jacob, that is, Jews. Peter proceeds now to the third part of his argument, to show that Jesus Chri...
Ye men of Israel - Descendants of Israel or Jacob, that is, Jews. Peter proceeds now to the third part of his argument, to show that Jesus Christ had been raised up; that the scene which had occurred was in accordance with his promise, was proof of his resurrection, and of his exaltation to be the Messiah; and that, therefore, they should repent for their great sin in having put their own Messiah to death.
A man approved of God - A man who was shown or demonstrated to have the approbation of God, or to have been sent by him.
By miracles, and wonders, and signs - The first of these words properly means the displays of power which Jesus made; the second, the unusual or remarkable events which attended him, as suited to excite wonder or amazement; the third, the sights or proofs that he was from God. Together, they denote the array or series of remarkable works - raising the dead, healing the sick, etc., which showed that Jesus was sent from God. The proof which they furnished that he was from God was this, that He would not confer such power on an impostor, and that therefore Jesus was what he pretended to be.
Which God did, by him - The Lord Jesus himself often traced his power to do these things to his commission from the Father, but he did it in such a way as to show that he was closely united to him, Joh 5:19, Joh 5:30. Peter here says that God did these works by Jesus Christ, to show that Jesus was truly sent by him, and that therefore he had the seal and attestation of God. The same thing Jesus himself said, Joh 5:36, "The work which the Father hath given me to finish, the same works that I do, bear witness of me, that the Father hath sent me."The great works which God has made in creation, as well as in redemption, he is represented as having done by his Son, Heb 1:2, "By whom also he made the worlds,"Joh 1:3; Col 1:15-19.
In the midst of you - In your own land. It is also probable that many of the persons present had been witnesses of his miracles.
As ye yourselves also know - They knew it either by having witnessed them, or by the evidence which everywhere abounded of the truth that he had performed them. The Jews, even in the time of Christ, did not dare to call his miracles in question, Joh 15:24. While they admitted the miracle, they attempted to trace it to the influence of Beelzebub, Mat 9:34; Mar 3:22. So decided and numerous were the miracles of Jesus, that Peter here appeals to them as having been known by the Jews themselves to have been performed, and with a confidence that even riley could not deny it. On this he proceeds to rear his argument for the truth of his Messiahship.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:23 - -- Him, being delivered - ἔκδοτον ekdoton . This word, delivered, is used commonly of those who are surrendered or delivered into ...
Him, being delivered -
By the determinate counsel - The word translated "determinate"-
Counsel -
Foreknowledge - This word denotes "the seeing beforehand of an event yet to take place."It implies:
1. Omniscience; and,
2. That the event is fixed and certain.
To foresee a contingent event, that is, to foresee that an event will take place when it may or may not take place, is an absurdity. Foreknowledge, therefore, implies that for some reason the event will certainly take place. What that reason As, however, God is represented in the Scriptures as purposing or determining future events; as they could not be foreseen by him unless he had so determined, so the word sometimes is used in the sense of determining beforehand, or as synonymous with decreeing, Rom 8:29; Rom 11:2. In this place the word is used to denote that the delivering up of Jesus was something more than a bare or naked decree. It implies that God did it according to his foresight of what would be the best time, place, and manner of its being done. It was not the result merely of will; it was will directed by a wise foreknowledge of what would be best. And this is the case with all the decrees of God. It follows from this that the conduct of the Jews was foreknown. God was not disappointed in anything respecting their treatment of his Son, nor will he be disappointed in any of the actions of people. Notwithstanding the wickedness of the world, his counsel shall stand, and he will do all his pleasure, Isa 46:10.
Ye have taken - See Mat 26:57. Ye Jews have taken. It is possible that some were present on this occasion who had been personally concerned in taking Jesus, and many who had joined in the cry, "Crucify him, Luk 23:18-21. It was, at any rate, the act of the Jewish people by which this had been done. This was a striking instance of the fidelity of that preaching which says, as Nathan did to David, "Thou art the man!"Peter, once so timid that he denied his Lord, now charged this atrocious crime to his countrymen, regardless of their anger and his own danger. He did not deal in general accusations, but brought the charges home, and declared that they were the people who had been concerned in this amazing crime. No preaching can be successful that does not charge to people their personal guilt, and that does not fearlessly proclaim their ruin and danger.
By wicked hands - Greek: "through or by the hands of the lawless or wicked."This refers, doubtless, to Pilate and the Roman soldiers, through whose instrumentality this had been done. The reasons for supposing that this is the true interpretation of the passage are these:
(1) The Jews had not the power of inflicting death themselves.
(2)\caps1 t\caps0 he term used here, "wicked,"
(3)\caps1 t\caps0 he punishment which was inflicted was a Roman punishment.
(4)\caps1 i\caps0 t was a matter of fact that the Jews, though they had condemned him, yet had not put him to death themselves, but had demanded it of the Romans. But, though they had employed the Romans to do it, still they were the prime movers in the deed; they had plotted, and compassed, and demanded his death, and they were, therefore, not the less guilty. The maxim of the common law and of common sense is, "He who does a deed by the instrumentality of another is responsible for it."It was from no merit of the Jews that they had not put him to death themselves. It was simply because the power was taken away from them.
Have crucified - Greek: "Having affixed him to the cross, ye have put him to death."Peter here charges the crime fully on them. Their guilt was not diminished because they had employed others to do it. From this we may remark:
1. That this was one of the most amazing and awful crimes that could be charged to any people. It was malice, and treason, and hatred, and murder combined. Nor was it any common murder. It was their own Messiah whom they had put to death; the hope of their fathers; he who had been long promised by God, and the prospect of whose coming had so long cheered and animated the nation. They had now imbrued their hands in his blood, and stood charged with the awful crime of having murdered the Prince of Peace.
2. It is no mitigation of guilt that we do it by the instrumentality of others. It is often, if not always, a deepening and extending of the crime.
3. We have here a striking and clear instance of the doctrine that the decrees of God do not interfere with the free agency of people. This event was certainly determined beforehand. Nothing is clearer than this. It is here expressly asserted; and it had been foretold with undeviating certainty by the prophets. God had, for wise and gracious purposes, purposed or decreed in his own mind that his Son should die at the time and in the manner in which he did; for all the circumstances of his death, as well as of his birth and his life, were foretold; and yet in this the Jews and the Romans never supposed or alleged that they were compelled or cramped in what they did. They did what they chose. If in this case the decrees of God were not inconsistent with human freedom, neither can they be in any case. Between those decrees and the freedom of man there is no inconsistency, unless it could be shown - what never can be that God compels people to act contrary to their own will. In such a case there could be no freedom. But that is not the case with regard to the decrees of God. An act is what it is in itself; it can be contemplated and measured by itself. That it was foreseen, foreknown, or purposed does not alter its nature, anymore than it does that it be remembered after it is performed. The memory of what we have done does not destroy our freedom. "Our own purposes"in relation to our conduct do not destroy our freedom; nor can the purposes or designs of any other being violate one free moral action, unless he compels us to do a thing against our will.
4. We have here a proof that the decrees of God do not take away the moral character of an action. It does not prove that an action is innocent if it is shown that it is a part of the wise plan of God to permit it, Never was there a more atrocious crime than the crucifixion of the Son of God; and yet it was determined on in the divine counsels. So with all the deeds of human guilt. The purpose of God to permit them does not destroy their nature or make them innocent. They are what they are in themselves. The purpose of God does not change their character; and if it is right to push them in fact, they will be punished. If it is right for God to punish them, it was right to resolve to do it. The sinner must answer for his sins, not for the plans of his Maker; nor can he take shelter in the day of wrath against what he deserves in the plea that God has determined future events. If any people could have done it, it would have been those whom Peter addressed; yet neither he nor they felt that their guilt was in the least diminished by the fact that Jesus was "delivered by the determinate counsel and foreknowledge of God."
5. If this event was predetermined; if that act of amazing wickedness, when the Son of God was put to death, was fixed by the determinate counsel of God, then all the events leading to it, and the circumstances attending it, were also a part of the decree. The one could not be determined without the other.
6. If that event was determined, then others may also be consistently with human freedom and responsibility. There can be no deed of wickedness that will surpass that of crucifying the Son of God, and if the acts of his murderers were a part of the wise counsel of God, then on the same principle are we to suppose that all events are under his direction, and ordered by a purpose infinitely wise and good.
7. If the Jews could not take shelter from the charge of wickedness under the plea that it was foreordained, then no stoners can do it. This was as clear a case as can ever occur; and yet the apostle did not intimate that an excuse or mitigation for their sin could be pled from this cause. This case, therefore, meets all the excuses of sinners from this plea, and proves that those excuses will not avail them or save them in the day of judgment.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:24 - -- Whom God hath raised up - This was the main point, in this part of his argument, which Peter wished to establish. He could not but admit that t...
Whom God hath raised up - This was the main point, in this part of his argument, which Peter wished to establish. He could not but admit that the Messiah had been in an ignominious manner put to death. But he now shows them that God had also raised him up; had thus given his attestation to his doctrine; and had sent down his Spirit according to the promise which the Lord Jesus made before his death.
Having loosed the pains of death - The word "loosed,"
The pains of death -
We are not to infer from this that our Lord suffered anything after death. It means simply that he could not be held by the grave, but that God loosed the bonds which had held him there; that he now set him free who had been encompassed by these pains or bonds until they had brought him down to the grave. Pain, mighty pain, will encompass us all like the constrictions and bindings of a cord which we cannot loose, and will fasten our limbs and bodies in the grave. Those bands begin to be thrown around us in early life, and they are drawn closer and closer, until we lie panting under the stricture on a bed of pain, and then are still and immovable in the grave - subdued in a manner not a little resembling the mortal agonies of the tiger in the convolutions of the boa constrictor, or like Laocoon and his sons in the folds of the serpents from the Island of Tenedos.
It was not possible - This does not refer to any natural impossibility, or to any inherent efficacy or power in the body of Jesus itself, but simply means that "in the circumstances of the case such an event could not be."Why it could not be he proceeds at once to show. It could not be consistently with the promises of the Scriptures. Jesus was the "Prince of life"Act 3:15; he had life in himself Joh 1:4; Joh 5:26; he had power to lay down his life and to take it again Jdg 10:18; and it was indispensable that he should rise. He came, also, that through death he might destroy him that had the power of death that is, the devil Heb 2:14; and as it was his purpose to gain this victory, he could not be defeated in it by being confined to the grave.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:25 - -- For Daniel speaketh ... - This doctrine that the Messiah must rise from the dead Peter proceeds to prove by a quotation from the Old Testament....
For Daniel speaketh ... - This doctrine that the Messiah must rise from the dead Peter proceeds to prove by a quotation from the Old Testament. This passage is taken from Psa 16:8-11. It is made from the Greek version of the Septuagint, with only one slight and unimportant change. Nor is there any material change, as will be seen, from the Hebrew. In what sense this Psalm can be applied to Christ will be seen after we have examined the expressions which Peter alleges.
I foresaw the Lord - This is an unhappy translation. To foresee the Lord always before us conveys no idea, though it may be a literal translation of the passage. The word means "to foresee,"and then "to see before us,"that is, "as present with us, to regard as being near."It thus implies "to put confidence in one; to rely on him, or expect assistance from him."This is its meaning here. The Hebrew is, "I expected, or waited for."It thus expresses the petition of one who is helpless and dependent, who waits for help from God. It is often thus used in the Old Testament.
Always before my face - As being always present to help me, and to deliver me out of all my troubles.
He is on my right hand - To be at hand is to be near to afford help. The right hand is mentioned because that was the place of dignity and honor. David did not design simply to say that he was near to help him, but that he had the place of honor, the highest place in his affections, Psa 109:31. In our dependence on God we should exalt him. We should not merely regard him as our help, but should at the same time give him the highest place in our affections.
That I should not be moved - That is, that no great evil or calamity should happen to me; that I may stand firm. The phrase denotes "to sink into calamities, or to fall into the power of enemies,"Psa 62:2, Psa 62:6; Psa 46:6. This expresses the confidence of one who is in danger of great calamities, and who puts his trust in the help of God alone.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:26 - -- Therefore - Peter ascribes these expressions to the Messiah. The reason why he would exult or rejoice was, that he would be preserved amidst th...
Therefore - Peter ascribes these expressions to the Messiah. The reason why he would exult or rejoice was, that he would be preserved amidst the sorrows that were coming on him, and could look forward to the triumph that awaited him. Thus, Paul says Heb 12:2 that "Jesus ..."for the joy that was set before him,"endured the cross, despising the shame,"etc. Throughout the New Testament, the shame and sorrow of his sufferings were regarded as connected with his glory and his triumph, Luk 24:26; Phi 2:6-9; Eph 1:20-21. In this our Saviour has left us an example that we should walk in his steps. The prospect of future glory and triumph should sustain us amidst all afflictions, and make us ready, like him, to lie down in even the corruptions of the grave.
Did my heart rejoice - In the Hebrew this is in the prescott tense, "my heart rejoices."The word "heart"here expresses "the person,"and is the same as saying "I rejoice."The Hebrews used the different members to express the person. And thus we say, "every soul perished; the vessel had 40 hands; wise heads do not think so; hearts of steel will not flinch,"etc. (Prof. Stuart on Psa 16:1-11). The meaning is, because God is near me in time of calamity, and will support and deliver me, I will not be agitated or fear, but will exult in the prospect of the future, in view of the "joy that is set before me."
My tongue was glad - Hebrew, My glory or my honor exults. The word is used to denote "majesty, splendor, dignity, honor."It is also used to express the heart or soul, either because that is the chief source of man’ s dignity, or because the word is also expressive of the liver, regarded by the Hebrews as the seat of the affections, Gen 49:6, "Unto their assembly, mine honor,"that is, my soul, or myself, "be not thou united"; Psa 57:8, "Awake up, my glory,"etc.; Psa 108:1, "I will sing ...even with my glory."This word the Septuagint translated "tongue."The Arabic and Latin Vulgate have also done the same. Why they thus use the word is not clear. It may be because the tongue, or the gift of speech, was what chiefly contributes to the honor of man, or distinguishes him from the brutal creation. The word "glory"is used expressly for "tongue"in Psa 30:12; "To the end that my glory may sing praise to thee, and not be silent."
Moreover also - Truly; in addition to this.
My flesh - My body. See Act 2:31; 1Co 5:5. It means here properly the body separate from the soul; the dead body.
Shall rest - Shall rest or repose in the grave, free from corruption.
In hope - In confident expectation of a resurrection. The Hebrew word rather expresses confidence than hope. The passage means, "My body will I commit to the grave, with a confident expectation of the future, that is, with a firm belief that it will not see corruption, but will be raised up."It thus expresses the feelings of the dying Messiah; the assured confidence which he had that his repose in the grave would not be long, and would certainly come to an end. The death of Christians is also in the New Testament represented as a sleep, and as repose Act 7:60; 1Co 15:6, 1Co 15:18; 1Th 4:13, 1Th 4:15; 2Pe 3:4; and they may also, after the example of their Lord, commit their bodies to the dust, in hope. They will lie in the grave under the assurance of a happy resurrection; and though their bodies, unlike his, will moulder to their native dust, yet this corruptible will put on incorruption, and this mortal will put on immorality, 1Co 15:53.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:27 - -- Thou wilt not leave my soul - The word "soul,"with us, means "the thinking, the immortal part of man,"and is applied to it whether existing in ...
Thou wilt not leave my soul - The word "soul,"with us, means "the thinking, the immortal part of man,"and is applied to it whether existing in connection with the body or separate from it. The Hebrew word translated "soul"here,
In hell - -
In Rev 20:13-14, it is connected with death: "And death and hell (Hades) delivered up the dead which were in them"; "And death and hell (Hades) were cast into the lake of fire."See also Rev 6:8; Rev 1:18, "I have the keys of hell and death."In 1Co 15:55 it means the grave: "O grave (Hades), where is thy victory?"In Mat 11:23 it means a deep, profound place, opposed to an exalted one; a condition of calamity and degradation, opposed to former great prosperity: "Thou, Capernaum, which art exalted to heaven, shalt be thrust down to hell"(Hades). In Luk 16:23 it is applied to the place where the rich man was after death, in a state of punishment: "In hell (Hades) he lifted up his eyes, being in torments."In this place it is connected with the idea of suffering, and undoubtedly denotes a place of punishment. The Septuagint has used this word commonly to translate the word
Once it is used as a translation of the phrase "the stones of the pit"Isa 14:19; twice to express silence, particularly the silence of the grave Psa 94:17; Psa 115:17; once to express the Hebrew for "the shadow of death"Job 38:17; and sixty times to translate the word Sheol. It is remarkable that it is never used in the Old Testament to denote the word
(1) The word "death"and the grave
\caps1 (2) m\caps0 an has a soul, a thinking principle, and the inquiry must arise, What will be its state? Will it die also? The Hebrews never appear to have believed that. Will it ascend to heaven at once? On that subject they had at first no knowledge. Will it go at once to a place of happiness or of torment? Of that, also, they had no information at first Yet they supposed it would live; and the word
\caps1 (3) t\caps0 he inquiry could not but arise whether all these beings were happy. This point revelation decided; and it was decided in the O d Testament. Yet this word would better express the state of the wicked dead than the righteous. It conveyed the idea of darkness, gloom, wandering; the idea of a sad and unfixed abode, unlike heaven. Hence, the word sometimes expresses the idea of a place of punishment: Psa 9:17, "The wicked shall be turned into hell,"etc.; Pro 15:11; Pro 23:14; Pro 27:20; Job 26:6. While, therefore, the word does not mean properly a grave or a sepulchre, it does mean often "the state of the dead,"without designating whether in happiness or woe, but implying the continued existence of the soul. In this sense it is often used in the Old Testament, where the Hebrew word is Sheol, and the Greek Hades: Gen 37:35, "I will go down into the grave, unto my son, mourning"I will go down to the dead, to death, to my son, still there existing; Gen 42:38; Gen 44:29, "He shall bring down my gray hairs with sorrow to the grave; Num 16:30, Num 16:33; 1Ki 2:6, 1Ki 2:9; etc. etc. in the place before us, therefore, the meaning is simply, thou wilt not leave me among the dead. This conveys all the idea. It does not mean literally the grave or the sepulchre; that relates only to the body. This expression refers to the deceased Messiah. Thou wilt not leave him among the dead; thou wilt raise him up. It is from this passage, perhaps, aided by two others (Rom 10:7, and 1Pe 3:19), that the doctrine originated that Christ "descended,"as it is expressed in the Creed, "into hell"; and many have invented strange opinions about his going among lost spirits. The doctrine of the Roman Catholic Church has been that he went to purgatory, to deliver the spirits confined there. But if the interpretation now given be correct, then it will follow:
(1) That nothing is affirmed here about the destination of the human soul of Christ after his death. That he went to the region of the dead is implied, but nothing further.
(2) It may be remarked that the Scriptures affirm nothing about the state of his soul in that time which intervened between his death and resurrection. The only intimation which occurs on the subject is such as to leave us to suppose that he was in a state of happiness. To the dying thief he said, "This day shalt thou be with me in paradise."When Jesus died, he said, "It is finished"; and he doubtless meant by that that his sufferings and toils for man’ s redemption were at an end. All suppositions of any toils or pains after his death are fables, and without the slightest warrant in the New Testament.
Thine Holy One - The word in the Hebrew which is translated here "Holy One"properly denotes "One who is tenderly and piously devoted to another,"and corresponds to the expression used in the New Testament, "my beloved Son."It is also used, as it is here by the Septuagint and by Peter, to denote "One that is holy, that is set apart to God."In this sense it is applied to Christ, either as being set apart to this office, or as so pure as to make it proper to designate him by way of eminence the Holy One, or the Holy One of God. It is several times used as the wellknown designation of the Messiah: Mar 1:24, "I know thee who thou art, the Holy One of God"; Luk 4:34; Act 3:14, "But ye denied the Holy One, and the just,"etc. See also Luk 1:35, "That holy thing that is born of thee shall be called the Son of God."
To see corruption - To see corruption is to experience it, to be made partakers of it. The Hebrews often expressed the idea of experiencing anything by the use of words pertaining to the senses, as, to taste of death, to see death, etc. Corruption here means putrefaction in the grave. The word which is used in the Psalm,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:28 - -- Thou hast made known ... - The Hebrew is, "Thou wilt make known to me,"etc. In relation to the Messiah, it means, Thou wilt restore me to life....
Thou hast made known ... - The Hebrew is, "Thou wilt make known to me,"etc. In relation to the Messiah, it means, Thou wilt restore me to life.
The ways of life - This properly means the path to life; as we say, the road to preferment or honor; the path to happiness; the highway to ruin, etc. See Pro 7:26-27. It means, thou wilt make known to me life itself, that is, thou wilt restore me to life. The expressions in the Psalm are capable of this interpretation without doing any violence to the text; and if the preceding verses refer to the death and burial of the Messiah, then the natural and proper meaning of this is, that he would be restored to life again.
Thou shalt make me full of joy - This expresses the feelings of the Messiah in view of the favor that would thus be showed him; the resurrection from the dead, and the elevation to the right hand of God. It was this which is represented as sustaining him the prospect of the joy that was before him, in heaven, Heb 12:2; Eph 1:20-22.
With thy countenance - Literally, "with thy face,"that is, in thy presence. The words "countenance"and "presence"mean the same thing, and denote "favor,"or the "honor and happiness"provided by being admitted to the presence of God. The prospect of the honor that would be bestowed on the Messiah was what sustained him. And this proves that the person contemplated in the Psalm expected to be raised from the dead, and exalted to the presence of God. That expectation is now fulfilled, and the Messiah is now filled with joy in his exaltation to the throne of the universe. He has "ascended to his Father and our Father"; he is "seated at the right hand of God"; he has entered on that "joy which was set before him"; he is "crowned with glory and honor"; and "all things are put under his feet."In view of this, we may remark:
(1) That the Messiah had full and confident expectation that he would rise from the dead. This the Lord Jesus always evinced, and often declared it to his disciples.
(2)\caps1 i\caps0 f the Saviour rejoiced in view of the glories before him, we should also. We should anticipate with joy an everlasting dwelling in the presence of God, and the high honor of sitting "with him on his throne, as he overcame, and is set down with the Father on his throne."
(3)\caps1 t\caps0 he prospect of this should sustain us, as it did him, in the midst of persecution, calamity, and trials. Thy will soon be ended; and if we are his friends, we shall "overcome,"as he did, and be admitted to "the fulness of joy"above, and to the "right hand"of God, "where are pleasures forevermore."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:29 - -- Men and brethren - This passage of the Psalms Peter now proves could not relate to David, but must have reference to the Messiah. He begins his...
Men and brethren - This passage of the Psalms Peter now proves could not relate to David, but must have reference to the Messiah. He begins his argument in a respectful manner, addressing them as his brethren, though they had just charged him and the others with intoxication. Christians should use the usual respectful forms of salutation, whatever contempt and reproaches they may meet with from opposers.
Let me freely speak - That is, "It is lawful or proper to speak with boldness, or openly, respecting David."Though he was eminently a pious man, though venerated by us all as a king, yet it is proper to say of him that he is dead, and has returned to corruption. This was a delicate way of expressing high respect for the monarch whom they all honored, and yet evinced boldness in examining a passage of Scripture which probably many supposed to have reference solely to him.
Of the patriarch David - The word "patriarch"properly means "the head or ruler of a family"; and then "the founder of a family, or an illustrious ancestor."It was commonly applied to Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob by way of eminence, the illustrious founders of the Jewish nation, Heb 7:4; Act 7:8-9. It was also applied to the heads of the families, or the chief men of the tribes of Israel, 1Ch 24:31; 2Ch 19:8, etc. It was thus a title of honor, denoting "high respect."Applied to David, it means that he was the illustrious head or founder of the royal family, and the word is expressive of Peter’ s intention not to say anything disrespectful of such a king, at the same time that he freely canvassed a passage of Scripture which had been supposed to refer to him.
Dead and buried - The record of that fact they had in the O d Testament. There had been no pretence that he had risen, and therefore the Psalm could not apply to him.
His sepulchre is with us - Is in the city of Jerusalem., Sepulchres wore commonly situated without the walls of cities and the limits of villages. The custom of burying in towns was not commonly practiced. This was true of other ancient nations as well as the Hebrews, and is still in Eastern countries, except in the case of kings and very distinguished men, whose ashes are permitted to rest within the walls of a city: 1Sa 28:3, "Samuel was dead ...and Israel ...buried him in Ramah, in his own city"; 2Ki 21:18, "Manasseh ...was buried in the garden of his own house"; 2Ch 16:14, Asa was buried in the city of David; 2Ki 14:20. David was buried in the city of David 1Ki 2:10, with his fathers; that is, on Mount Zion, where he built a city called after his name, 2Sa 5:7. Of what form the tombs of the kings were is not certainly known. It is almost certain, however, that they would be constructed in a magnificent manner.
The tombs were commonly excavations from rocks, or natural caves; and sepulchres cut out of the solid rock, of vast extent, are Known to have existed. The following account of the tomb called "the sepulchre of the kings"is abridged from Maundrell: "The approach is through an entrance cut out of a solid rock, which admits you into an open court about 40 paces square, cut down into the rock. On the south side is a portico nine paces long and four broad, hewn likewise out of the solid rock. At the end of the portico is the descent to the sepulchres. The descent is into a room about 7 or 8 yards square, cut out of the natural rock. From this room there are passages into six more, all of the same fabric with the first. In every one of these rooms, except the first, were coffins placed in niches in the sides of the chamber,"etc. (Maundrell’ s Travels). If the tombs of the kings were of this form, it is clear that they were works of great labor and expense.
Probably, also, there were, as there are now, costly and splendid monuments erected to the memory of the mighty dead. The following extract from "The Land and the Book,"and cut on the next page (from Williams’ Holy City), will illustrate the usual construction of tombs: "The entire system of rooms, niches, and passages may be comprehended at once by an inspection of the plan of the Tombs of the Judges near Jerusalem. The entrance faces the west, and has a vestibule (a) 13 feet by 9. Chamber (B), nearly 20 feet square, and 8 high. The north side is seen in elevation in Fig. 2, and shows two tiers of niches, one over the other, not often met with in tombs. There are seven in the lower tier, each 7 feet long, 20 inches wide, and nearly 3 feet high. The upper tier has three arched recesses, and each recess has two niches. From this room (B) doors lead out into chambers (C and D), which have their own special system of niches, or Ioculi, for the reception of the bodies, as appears on the plan. I have explored scores of sepulchres at Ladakiyeh closely resembling this at Jerusalem, and there are many in the plain and on the hillsides above us here at Sidon of the same general form chambers within chambers, and each with niches for the dead, variously arranged according to taste or necessity."
These tombs are about a mile northwest of Jerusalem. "The tombs which are commonly called the ‘ Tombs of the Kings’ are in an olivegrove about half a mile north of the Damascus Gate, and a few rods east of the great road to Nablus. A court is sunk in the solid rock about 90 feet square and 20 deep. On the west side of this court is a sort of portico, 39 feet long, 17 deep, and 15 high. It was originally ornamented with grapes, garlands, and festoons, beautifully done on the cornice; and the columns in the center, and the pilasters at the corners, appear to have resembled the Corinthian order. A very low door in the south end of the portico opens into the ante-chamber - 19 feet square, and 7 or 8 high. From this three passages conduct into other rooms, two of them, to the south, having five or six crypts. A passage also leads from the west room down several steps into a large vault running north, where are crypts parallel to the sides. These rooms are all cut in rock intensely hard, and the entrances were originally closed with stone doors, made with panels and hung on stone hinges, which are now all broken. The whole series of tombs indicates the hand of royalty and the leisure of years, but by whom and for whom they were made is a mere matter of conjecture. I know no good reason for ascribing them to Helena of Adiabene. Most travelers and writers are inclined to make them the sepulchres of the Asmonean kings"(The Land and the Book, vol. 2, pp. 487, 488). The site of the tomb of David is no longer known.
Unto this day - That the sepulchre of David was well known and honored is clear from Josephus (Antiq., book 7, chapter 15, section 3): "He (David) was buried by his son Solomon in Jerusalem with great magnificence, and with all the other funeral pomps with which kings used to be buried. Moreover, he had immense wealth buried with him: for one thousand and three hundred years afterward Hyrcanus the high priest, when he was besieged by Antiochus, and was desirous of giving him money to raise the siege, opened one room of David’ s sepulchre and took out three thousand talents. Herod, many years afterward, opened another room, and took away a great deal of money,"etc. See also Antiq., book 13, chapter 8, section 4. The tomb of a monarch like David would be well known and had in reverence. Peter might, then, confidently appeal to their own belief and knowledge that David had not been raised from the dead. No Jew believed or supposed it. All, by their care of his sepulchre, and by the honor with which they regarded his grave, believed that he had returned to corruption. The Psalm, therefore, could not apply to him.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:30 - -- Therefore - As David was dead and buried, it was clear that he could not have referred to himself in this remarkable declaration. It followed t...
Therefore - As David was dead and buried, it was clear that he could not have referred to himself in this remarkable declaration. It followed that he must have had reference to some other one.
Being a prophet - One who foretold future events. That David was inspired is clear, 2Sa 23:2. Many of the prophecies relating to the Messiah are found in the Psalms of David: Psa 22:1, compare Mat 27:46; Luk 24:44 - Psa 22:18, compare Mat 27:35 - Psa 69:21, compare Mat 27:34, Mat 27:48 - Psa 69:25, compare Act 1:20.
And knowing - Knowing by what God had said to him respecting his posterity.
Had sworn with an oath - The places which speak of God as having sworn to David are found in Psa 89:3-4, "I have made a covenant with my chosen, I have sworn unto David my servant, Thy seed will I establish,"etc.; and Psa 132:11, "The Lord hath sworn in truth unto David, he will not turn from it, Of the fruit of thy body will I set upon my throne"; Psa 89:35-36. The promise to which reference is made in all these places is in 2Sa 7:11-16.
Of the fruit of his loins - Of his descendants. See 2Sa 7:12; Gen 35:11; Gen 46:26; 1Ki 8:19, etc.
According to the flesh - That is, so far as the human nature of the Messiah was concerned, he would be descended from David. Expressions like these are very remarkable. If the Messiah was only a man, they would be unmeaning. They are never used in relation to a mere man; and they imply that the speaker or writer supposed that there pertained to the Messiah a nature which was not according to the flesh. See Rom 1:3-4.
He would raise up Christ - That is, the Messiah. To raise up seed, or descendants, is to give them to him. The promises made to David in all these places had immediate reference to Solomon and to his descendants. But it is clear that the New Testament writers understood them as referring also to the Messiah. And it is no less clear that the Jews understood that the Messiah was to be descended from David, Mat 12:23; Mat 21:9; Mat 22:42, Mat 22:45; Mar 11:10; Joh 7:42, etc. In what way these promises that were made to David were understood as applying to the Messiah, it may not be easy to determine. The fact, however, is clear. The following remarks may throw some light on the subject:
(a) The kingdom which was promised to David was to have no end; it was to be established forever. Yet his descendants died, and all other kingdoms changed.
(b) The promise likewise stood by itself; it was not made to any other of the Jewish kings; nor were similar declarations made of surrounding kingdoms and nations. It came, therefore, gradually to be applied to that future king and kingdom which was the hope of the nation; and their eyes were anxiously fixed on the long-expected Messiah.
© At the time that he came it had become the settled doctrine of the Jews that he was to descend from David, and that his kingdom was to be perpetual.
On this belief of the prophecy the apostles argued; and the opinions of the Jews furnished a strong point by which they could convince them that Jesus was the Messiah. Peter affirms that David was aware of this, and that he so understood the promise as referring not only to Solomon, but in a far more important sense to the Messiah. Happily we have a commentary of David himself as expressing his own views of that promise. That commentary is found particularly in Psa 2:1-12; Ps. 22; Ps. 69; and Psa 16:1-11; In these Psalms there can be no doubt that David looked forward to the coming of the Messiah; and there can be as little that he regarded the promise made to him as extending to his coming and his reign.
It may be remarked that there are some important variations in the manuscripts in regard to this verse. The expression "according to the flesh"is omitted in many mss., and is now left out by Griesbach in his New Testament. It is omitted also by the ancient Syriac and Ethiopic versions, and by the Latin Vulgate.
To sit on his throne - To be his successor in his kingdom. Saul was the first of the kings of Israel. The kingdom was taken away from him and his posterity, and conferred on David and his descendants. It was determined that it should be continued in the family of David, and no more go out of his family, as it had from the family of Saul. The unique characteristic of David as king, or what distinguished him from the other kings of the earth, was that he reigned over the people of God. Israel was his chosen people, and the kingdom was over that nation. Hence, he that should reign over the people of God, though in a manner somewhat different from David, would be regarded as occupying his throne, and as being his successor. The form of the administration might be varied, but it would still retain its prime characteristic as being a reign over the people of God. In this sense the Messiah sits on the throne of David. He is his descendant and successor. He has an empire over all the friends of the Most High. And as that kingdom is destined to fill the earth, and to be eternal in the heavens, so it may be said that it is a kingdom which shall have no end. It is spiritual, but not the less real; defended not with carnal weapons, but not the less really defended; advanced not by the sword and the din of arms, but not the less really advanced against principalities, and powers, and spiritual wickedness in high places; not under a visible head and earthly monarch, but not less really under the Captain of salvation and the King of kings.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:31 - -- He, seeing this before ... - By the spirit of prophecy. From this it appears that David had distinct views of the great doctrines pertaining to...
He, seeing this before ... - By the spirit of prophecy. From this it appears that David had distinct views of the great doctrines pertaining to the Messiah.
Spake ... - See Psa 16:1-11.
That his soul ... - See the notes on Act 2:27.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:32 - -- This Jesus - Peter, having shown that it was predicted that the Messiah would rise, now affirms that such a resurrection occurred in the case o...
This Jesus - Peter, having shown that it was predicted that the Messiah would rise, now affirms that such a resurrection occurred in the case of Jesus. If it was a matter of prophecy, all objection to the truth of the doctrine was taken away, and the only question was whether there was evidence that this had been done. The proof of this Peter now alleges, and offers his own testimony, and that of his brethren, to the truth of this great and glorious fact.
We are all witnesses - It seems probable that Peter refers here to the whole 120 who were present, and who were ready to attest it in any manner. The matter which was to be proved was that Jesus was seen alive after he had been put to death. The apostles were appointed to bear witness of this. We are told by Paul 1Co 15:6 that he was seen by more than five hundred brethren, that is, Christians, at one time. The 120 assembled on this occasion were doubtless part of the number, and were ready to attest this. This was the proof that Peter alleged; and the strength of this proof was, and should have been, perfectly irresistible:
(1) They had seen him themselves. They did not conjecture it or reason about it; but they had the evidence on which people act every day, and which must be regarded as satisfactory the evidence of their own senses.
(2)\caps1 t\caps0 he number was such they could not be imposed on. If 120 persons could not prove a plain matter of fact, nothing could be established by testimony; there could be no way of arriving at any facts.
(3)\caps1 t\caps0 he thing to be established was a plain matter. It was not that they "saw him rise."That they never pretended: Impostors would have done this. But it was that they saw him, talked, walked, ate, drank with him, being alive, after, he had been crucified. The fact of his death was matter of Jewish record, and no one called it in question. The only fact for Christianity to make out was that he was seen alive afterward, and this was attested by many witnesses.
(4)\caps1 t\caps0 hey had no interest in deceiving the world in this thing. There was no prospect of pleasure, wealth, or honor in doing it.
(5)\caps1 t\caps0 hey offered themselves now as ready to endure any sufferings, or to die, in attestation of the truth of this event.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:33 - -- Therefore, being by the right hand - The right hand among the Hebrews was often used to denote "power"; and the expression here means, not that...
Therefore, being by the right hand - The right hand among the Hebrews was often used to denote "power"; and the expression here means, not that he was exalted to the right hand of God. but by his power. He was raised from the dead by his power, and borne to heaven, triumphant over all his enemies. The use of the word "right hand"to denote "power"is common in the Scriptures: Job 40:14, "Thine own right hand can save thee"; Psa 17:7, "Thou savest by thy right hand them that trust in thee"; Psa 18:35; Psa 20:6; Psa 21:8; Psa 44:3; Psa 60:5, etc.
Exalted - Constituted King and Messiah in heaven. Raised up from his condition of humiliation to the glory which he had with the Father before the world was, Joh 17:5.
And having received ... - The Holy Spirit was promised to the disciples before his death, Joh 14:26; Joh 15:26; Joh 16:13-15. It was expressly declared:
(1) That the Holy Spirit would not be given except the Lord Jesus should return to heaven Joh 16:7; and,
(2) That this gift was in the power of the Father, and that he would send him, Joh 14:26; Joh 15:26. This promise was now fulfilled, and those who witnessed the extraordinary scene before them could not doubt that it was the effect of divine power.
Hath shed forth this ... - This power of speaking different languages and declaring the truth of the gospel. In this way Peter accounts for the remarkable events before them. What had occurred could not be produced by new wine, Act 2:15. It was expressly foretold, Act 2:16-21. It was predicted that Jesus would rise, Act 2:22-31. The apostles were witnesses that he had risen, and that he had promised that the Holy Spirit would descend; and the fulfillment of this promise was a rational way of accounting for the scene before them. It was unanswerable; and the effect on those who witnessed it was such as might be expected.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:34-35 - -- For David is not ascended into the heavens - That is, David has not risen from the dead and ascended to heaven. This further shows that Psa 16:...
For David is not ascended into the heavens - That is, David has not risen from the dead and ascended to heaven. This further shows that Psa 16:1-11 could not refer to David, but must refer to the Messiah. Great as they esteemed David, and much as they were accustomed to apply these expressions of the Scripture to him, yet they could not be applicable to him. They must refer to some other being; and especially that passage which Peter now proceeds to quote. It was of great importance to show that these expressions could not apply to David, and also that David bore testimony to the exalted character and dignity of the Messiah. Hence, Peter here adduces David himself as affirming that the Messiah was to be exalted to a dignity far above his own. This does not affirm that David was not saved, or that his spirit had not ascended to heaven, but that he had not been exalted in the heavens in the sense in which Peter was speaking of the Messiah.
But he saith himself - Psa 110:1.
The Lord - The small capitals used in translating the word "Lord"in the Bible denote that the original word is
My Lord - This is a different word in the Hebrew - it is
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:36 - -- Therefore let all ... - "Convinced by the prophecies, by our testimony, and by the remarkable scenes exhibited on the day of Pentecost, let all...
Therefore let all ... - "Convinced by the prophecies, by our testimony, and by the remarkable scenes exhibited on the day of Pentecost, let all be convinced that the true Messiah has come and has been exalted to heaven."
House of Israel - The word "house"often means "family": "let all the family of Israel, that is, all the nation of the Jews, know this."
Know assuredly - Be assured, or know without any hesitation or possibility of mistake. This is the sum of his argument or his discourse. He had established the points which he purposed to prove, and he now applies it to his hearers.
God hath made - God hath appointed or constituted. See Act 5:31.
That same Jesus - The very person who had suffered. He was raised with the same body, and had the same soul; he was the same being, as distinguished from all others. So Christians, in the resurrection, will be the same beings that they were before they died.
Whom ye have crucified - See Act 2:23. There was nothing better suited to show them the guilt of having done this than the argument which Peter used. He showed them that God had sent him as the Messiah, and that he had showed his love for him in raising him from the dead. The Son of God, and the hope of their nation, they had put to death. He was not an impostor, nor a man sowing sedition, nor a blasphemer, but the Messiah of God; and they had imbrued their hands in his blood. There is nothing better suited to make sinners fear and tremble than to show them that, in rejecting Christ, they have rejected God; in refusing to serve him they have refused to serve God. The crime of sinners has a double malignity, as committed against a kind and lovely Saviour, and against the God who loved him, and appointed him to save people. Compare Act 3:14-15.
Both Lord - The word "lord"properly denotes "proprietor, master, or sovereign."Here it means clearly that God had exalted him to be the king so long expected; and that he had given him dominion in the heavens, or, as we should say, made him ruler of all things. The extent of this dominion may be seen in Joh 17:2; Eph 1:21, etc. In the exercise of this orifice, he now rules in heaven and on earth, and will yet come to judge the world. This truth was particularly suited to excite their fear. They had murdered their sovereign, now shown to be raised from the dead, and entrusted with infinite power. They had reason, therefore, to fear that he would come forth in vengeance, and punish them for their crimes. Sinners, in opposing the Saviour, are at war with their living and mighty sovereign and Lord. He has all power, and it is not safe to contend against the judge of the living and the dead.
And Christ - Messiah. They had thus crucified the hope of their nation; imbrued their hands in the blood of him to whom the prophets had looked; and put to death that Holy One, the prospect of whose coming had sustained the most holy men of the world in affliction, and cheered them when they looked on to future years. He who was the hope of their fathers had come, and they had put him to death; and it is no wonder that the consciousness of this - that a sense of guilt, and shame, and confusion should overwhelm their minds, and lead them to ask, in deep distress, what they should do.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:37 - -- Now when they heard this - When they heard this declaration of Peter, and this proof that Jesus was the Messiah. There was no fanaticism in his...
Now when they heard this - When they heard this declaration of Peter, and this proof that Jesus was the Messiah. There was no fanaticism in his discourse; it was cool, close, pungent reasoning. He proved to them the truth of what he was saying, and thus prepared the way for this effect.
They were pricked in their heart - The word translated were "pricked,"
(1) Their sorrow that the Messiah had been put to death by his own countrymen.
(2)\caps1 t\caps0 heir deep sense of guilt in having done this. There would be mingled here a remembrance of ingratitude, and a consciousness that they had been guilty of murder of the most aggravated and horrid kind, that of having killed their own Messiah.
(3)\caps1 t\caps0 he fear of his wrath. He was still alive; exalted to be theft Lord; and entrusted with all power. They were afraid of his vengeance; they were conscious that they deserved it; and they supposed that they were exposed to it.
(4)\caps1 w\caps0 hat they had done could not be undone. The guilt remained; they could not wash it out. They had imbrued theft hands in the blood of innocence, and the guilt of that oppressed their souls. This expresses the usual feelings which sinners have when they are convicted of sin.
Men and brethren - This was an expression denoting affectionate earnestness. Just before this they mocked the disciples, and charged them with being filled with new wine, Act 2:13. They now treated them with respect and confidence. The views which sinners have of Christians and Christian ministers are greatly changed when they are under conviction for sin. Before that they may deride and oppose them; then, they are glad to be taught by the obscurest Christian, and even cling to a minister of the gospel as if he could save them by his own power.
What shall we do? - What shall we do to avoid the wrath of this crucified and exalted Messiah? They were apprehensive of his vengeance, and they wished to know how to avoid it. Never was a more important question asked than this. It is the question which all convicted sinners ask. It implies an apprehension of danger, a sense of guilt, and a readiness to "yield the will"to the claims of God. This was the same question asked by Paul Act 9:6, "Lord, what wilt thou have me to do?"and by the jailor Act 16:30 "He ...came, trembling, ...and said, Sirs, what must I do to be saved?"The state of mind in this case - the case of a convicted sinner - consists in:
(1) A deep sense of the evil of the past life; remembrance of a thousand crimes perhaps before forgotten; a pervading and deepening conviction that the heart, and conversation, and life have been evil, and deserve condemnation.
(2) Apprehension about the justice of God; alarm when the mind looks upward to him, or onward to the day of death and judgment.
(3)\caps1 a\caps0 n earnest wish, amounting sometimes to agony, to be delivered from this sense of condemnation and this apprehension of the future.
(4)\caps1 a\caps0 readiness to sacrifice all to the will of God; to surrender the governing purpose of the mind, and to do what he requires. In this state the soul is prepared to receive the offers of eternal life; and when the sinner comes to this, the offers of mercy meet his case, and he yields himself to the Lord Jesus, and finds peace.
In regard to this discourse of Peter, and this remarkable result, we may observe:
(1) That this is the first discourse which was preached after the ascension of Christ, and is a model which the ministers of religion should imitate.
\caps1 (2) i\caps0 t is a clear and close argument. There is no ranting, no declamation, nothing but truth presented in a clear and striking manner. It abounds with proof of his main point, and supposes that his hearers were rational beings, and capable of being influenced by truth. Ministers have no right to address people as incapable of reason and thought, nor to imagine, because they are speaking on religious subjects, that therefore they are at liberty to speak nonsense.
\caps1 (3) t\caps0 hough these were eminent sinners, and had added to the crime of murdering the Messiah that of deriding the Holy Spirit and the ministers of the gospel, yet Peter reasoned with them coolly, and endeavored to convince them of their guilt. People should be treated as endowed with reason, and as capable of seeing the force and beauty of the great truths of religion.
\caps1 (4) t\caps0 he arguments of Peter were adapted to produce this effect on their minds, and to impress them deeply with the sense of their guilt. He proved to them that they had been guilty of putting the Messiah to death; that God had raised him up, and that they were now in the midst of the scenes which established one strong proof of the truth of what he was saying. No class of truths could have been so well adapted to make an impression of their guilt as these.
(5) Conviction for sin is a rational process on a sinner’ s mind. It is the proper state produced by a view of past sins. It is suffering truth to make an appropriate impression; suffering the mind to feel as it ought to feel. The man who is guilty ought to be willing to see and confess it. It is no disgrace to confess an error, or to feel deeply when we know we are guilty. Disgrace consists in a hypocritical desire to conceal crime; in the pride that is unwilling to avow it; in the falsehood which denies it. To feel it and to acknowledge it is the mark of an open and ingenuous mind.
\caps1 (6) t\caps0 hese same truths are adapted still to produce conviction for sin. The sinner’ s treatment of the Messiah should produce grief and alarm. He did not murder him, but he has rejected him; he did not crown him with thorns, but he has despised him; he did not insult him when hanging on the cross, but he has a thousand times insulted him since; he did not pierce his side with the spear, but he has pierced his heart by rejecting him and contemning his mercy. "For these things he should weep."In the Saviour’ s resurrection he has also a deep interest. He rose as the pledge that we may rise; and when the sinner looks forward, he should remember that he must meet the ascended Son of God. The Saviour reigns; he lives, Lord of all. The sinner’ s deeds now are aimed at his throne, and his heart, and his crown. All his crimes are seen by his sovereign, and it is not safe to mock the Son of God on his throne, or to despise him who will soon come to judgment. When the sinner feels these truths he should tremble and cry out, What shall I do?
\caps1 (7) w\caps0 e see here how the Spirit operates in producing conviction of sin. It is not in an arbitrary manner; it is in accordance with truth, and by the truth. Nor have we a right to expect that he will convict and convert people except as the truth is presented to their minds. They who desire success in the gospel should present clear, striking, and impressive truth, for such only God is accustomed to bless.
\caps1 (8) w\caps0 e have in the conduct of Peter and the other apostles a striking instance of the power of the gospel. Just before, Peter, trembling and afraid, had denied his Master with an oath; now, in the presence of the murderers of the Son of God, he boldly charged them with their crime, and dared their fury. Just before, all the disciples forsook the Lord Jesus and fled; now, in the presence of his murderers, they lifted their voice and proclaimed their guilt and danger, even in the city where he had been just arraigned and put to death. What could have produced this change but the power of God? And is there not proof here that a religion which produces such changes came from heaven?
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:38 - -- Then Peter said unto them - Peter had been the chief speaker, though others had also addressed them. He now, in the name of all, directed the m...
Then Peter said unto them - Peter had been the chief speaker, though others had also addressed them. He now, in the name of all, directed the multitude what to do.
Repent - See the notes on Mat 3:2. Repentance implies sorrow for sin as committed against God, along with a purpose to forsake it. It is not merely a fear of the consequences of sin or of the wrath of God in hell. It is such a view of sin, as evil in itself, as to lead the mind to hate it and forsake it. Laying aside all view of the punishment of sin, the true penitent hates it. Even if sin were the means of procuring him happiness; if it would promote his gratification and be unattended with any future punishment, he would hate it and turn from it. The mere fact that it is evil, and that God hates it, is a sufficient reason why those who are truly penitent hate it and forsake it. False repentance dreads the consequences of sin; true repentance dreads sin itself. These persons whom Peter addressed had been merely alarmed; they were afraid of wrath, and especially of the wrath of the Messiah. They had no true sense of sin as an evil, but were simply afraid of punishment. This alarm Peter did not regard as by any means genuine repentance. Such conviction for sin would soon wear off, unless their repentance became thorough and complete. Hence, he told them to repent, to turn from sin, to exercise sorrow for it as an evil and bitter thing, and to express their sorrow in the proper manner. We may learn here:
(1) That there is no safety in mere conviction for sin: it may soon pass off, and leave the soul as thoughtless as before.
\caps1 (2) t\caps0 here is no goodness or holiness in mere alarm or conviction. The devils ...tremble. A man may fear who yet has a firm purpose to do evil, if he can do it with impunity.
\caps1 (3) m\caps0 any are greatly troubled and alarmed who never repent. There is no situation where souls are so easily deceived as here. Alarm is taken for repentance; trembling for godly sorrow; and the fear of wrath is taken to be the true fear of God.
\caps1 (4) t\caps0 rue repentance is the only thing in such a state of mind that can give any relief. An ingenuous confession of sin, a solemn purpose to forsake it, and a true hatred of it, is the only thing that can give the mind composure. Such is the constitution of the mind that nothing else will furnish relief. But the moment we are willing to make an open confession of guilt, the mind is delivered of its burden, and the convicted soul finds peace. Until this is done, and the hold on sin is broken, there can be no peace.
\caps1 (5) w\caps0 e see here what direction is to be given to a convicted sinner. We are not to direct him to wait; nor to lead him to suppose that he is in a good way; nor to tell him to continue to seek; nor to call him a mourner; nor to take sides with him, as if God were wrong and harsh; nor to advise him to read, and search, and postpone the subject to a future time. We are to direct him to repent; to mourn over his sins, and to forsake them. Religion demands that he should at once surrender himself to God by genuine repentance; by confession that God is right and that he is wrong; and by a firm purpose to live a life of holiness.
Be baptized - See the notes on Mat 3:6, Mat 3:16. The direction which Christ gave to his apostles was that they should baptize all who believed, Mat 28:19; Mar 16:16. The Jews had not been baptized; and a baptism now would be a profession of the religion of Christ, or a declaration made before the world that they embraced Jesus as their Messiah. It was equivalent to saying that they should publicly and professedly embrace Jesus Christ as their Saviour. The gospel requires such a profession, and no one is at liberty to withhold it. A similar declaration is to be made to all who are inquiring the way to life. They are to exercise repentance; and then, without any unnecessary delay, to evince it by partaking of the ordinances of the gospel. If people are unwilling to profess religion, they have none. If they will not, in the proper way, show that they are truly attached to Christ, it is proof that they have no such attachment. Baptism is the application of water, as expressive of the need of purification, and as emblematic of the influences from God that can alone cleanse the soul. It is also a form of dedication to the service of God.
In the name of Jesus Christ - Not
For the remission of sins - Not merely the sin of crucifying the Messiah, but of all sins. There is nothing in baptism itself that can wash away sin. That can be done only by the pardoning mercy of God through the atonement of Christ. But baptism is expressive of a willingness to be pardoned in that way, and is a solemn declaration of our conviction that there is no other way of remission. He who comes to be baptized, comes with a professed conviction that he is a sinner; that there is no other way of mercy but in the gospel, and with a professed willingness to comply with the terms of salvation, and to receive it as it is offered through Jesus Christ.
And ye shall receive ... - The gift of the Holy Spirit here does not mean his extraordinary gifts, or the power of working miracles, but it simply means, you shall partake of the influences of the Holy Spirit "as far as they may be adapted to your case"- as far as may be needful for your comfort, peace, and sanctification. There is no evidence that they were all endowed with the power of working miracles, nor does the connection of the passage require us thus to understand it. Nor does it mean that they had not been awakened "by his influences."All true conviction is from him, Joh 16:8-10. But it is also the office of the Spirit to comfort, to enlighten, to give peace, and thus to give evidence that the soul is born again. To this, probably, Peter refers; and this all who are born again and profess faith in Christ possess. There is peace, calmness, joy; there is evidence of piety, and that evidence is the product of the influences of the Spirit. "The fruit of the Spirit is love, joy, peace,"etc., Gal 5:22, Gal 5:24.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:39 - -- For the promise - That is, the promise respecting the particular thing of which he was speaking - the influences of the Holy Spirit. This promi...
For the promise - That is, the promise respecting the particular thing of which he was speaking - the influences of the Holy Spirit. This promise he had adduced in the beginning of his discourse Act 2:17, and he now applies it to them. As the Spirit was promised to descend on Jews and their sons and daughters, it was applicable to them in the circumstances in which they then were. The only hope of lost sinners is in the promises of God, and the only thing that can give comfort to a soul that is convicted of sin is the hope that God will pardon and save.
Unto you - To you Jews, even though you have crucified the Messiah. The promise had special reference to the Jewish people.
To your children - In Joel, to their sons and daughters, who would, nevertheless, be old enough to prophesy. Similar promises occur in Isa 44:3, "I will pour my Spirit on thy seed, and my blessing on thine offspring"; and in Isa 59:21, "My Spirit that is upon thee, and my words which I have put in thy mouth, shall not depart out of thy mouth, nor out of the mouth of thy seed, nor out of the mouth of thy seed’ s seed, saith the Lord, from henceforth and forever."In these and similar places their descendants or posterity are denoted. It does not refer merely to children as children, and should not be adduced as applicable exclusively to infants. It is a promise I to parents that the blessings of salvation shall not be confined to parents, but shall be extended also to their posterity. Under this promise parents may be encouraged to train up their children for God; they are authorized to devote them to him in the ordinance of Christian baptism, and they may trust in his gracious purpose thus to perpetuate the blessings of salvation from age to age.
To all - To the whole race; not limited to Jews.
Afar off - To those in other lands. It is probable that Peter here referred to the Jews who were scattered in other nations; for he does not seem yet to have understood that the gospel was to be preached to the Gentiles. See Acts 10: Yet the promise was equally applicable to the Gentiles as the Jews, and the apostles were afterward brought so to understand it, Acts 10; Rom 10:12, Rom 10:14-20; 11. The Gentiles are sometimes clearly indicated by the expression "afar off Eph 2:13, Eph 2:17; and they are represented as having been brought nigh by the blood of Christ. The phrase is equally applicable to those who have been far off from God by their sins and their evil affections. To them also the promise is extended if they will return.
Even as many ... - The promise is not to those who do not hear the gospel, nor to those who do not obey it; but it is to those to whom God in his gracious providence shall send it. He has the power and right to pardon. The meaning of Peter is, that the promise is ample, full, free; that it is suited to all, and may be applied to all; that there is no defect or lack in the provisions or promises, but that God may extend it to whomsoever he pleases. We see here how ample and full are the offers of mercy. God is hot limited in the provisions of his grace; but the plan is applicable to all mankind. It is also the purpose of God to send it to all people, and he has given a solemn charge to his church to do it. We cannot reflect but with deep pain on the fact that, although these provisions have been made - fully made; that they are adapted to all people; but that yet they have been extended by his people to so small a portion of the human family. If the promise of life is to all, it is the duty of the church to send to all the message of mercy.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:40 - -- Many other words - This discourse, though one of the longest in the New Testament, is but an outline. It contains, however, the substance of th...
Many other words - This discourse, though one of the longest in the New Testament, is but an outline. It contains, however, the substance of the plan of salvation, and is admirably arranged to attain its object.
Testify - Bear witness to. He bore witness to the promises of Christianity; to the truths pertaining to the danger of sinners; and to the truth respecting the character of that generation.
Exhort - He entreated them by arguments and promises.
Save yourselves - This expression here denotes, preserve yourselves from the influence, opinions, and fate of this generation. It implies that they were to use diligence and effort to deliver themselves. God deals with people as free agents. He calls upon them to put forth their own power and effort to be saved. Unless they put forth their own strength, they will never be saved. When they are saved, they will ascribe to God the praise for having inclined them to seek him, and for the grace whereby they are saved.
This generation - This age or race of people; the Jews then living. They were not to apprehend danger from them from which they were to deliver themselves; but they were to apprehend danger from being with them, united in their plans; designs, and feelings. From the influence of their opinions, etc., they were to escape. That generation was signally corrupt and wicked. See Matt. 23; Mat 12:39; Mat 16:4; Mar 8:38. They had crucified the Messiah; and they were, for their sins, soon to be destroyed.
Order? this untoward generation? - Untoward: "Perverse, refractory, not easily guided or taught"(Webster). The same character our Saviour had given of that generation in Mat 11:16-19. This character they had shown uniformly. They were smooth, cunning, plausible; but they were corrupt in principle, and wicked in conduct. The Pharisees had a vast hold on the people. To break away from them was to set at defiance all their power and doctrines; to alienate themselves from their teachers and friends; to brave the authority of those in office, and those who had long claimed the right of teaching and guiding the nation. The chief danger of those who were now awakened was from that generation; that they would deride, or denounce, or persecute them, and induce them to abandon their seriousness, and turn back to their sins. And hence, Peter exhorted them at once to break off from them, and give themselves to Christ. We may hence learn:
(1) That if sinners will be saved they must make an effort. There is no promise to any unless they will exert themselves.
\caps1 (2) t\caps0 he principal danger which besets those who are awakened arises from their former companions. They are often wicked, cunning, rich, mighty. They may be their kindred, and will seek to drive off their serious impressions by derision, or argument, or persecution. They have a powerful hold on the affections, and they will seek to use it to prevent those who are awakened from becoming Christians.
\caps1 (3) t\caps0 hose who are awakened should resolve at once to break off from their evil companions, and unite themselves to Christ and his people. There may be no other way in which this can be done than by resolving to forsake altogether the society of those who are infidels, and scoffers, and profane. They should forsake the world, and give themselves up to God, and resolve to have only so much contact with the world, in any respect, as may be required by duty, and as may be consistent with a supreme purpose to live to the honor of God.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:41 - -- They that gladly received - The word rendered "gladly"means "freely, cheerfully, joyfully."It implies that they did it without compulsion, and ...
They that gladly received - The word rendered "gladly"means "freely, cheerfully, joyfully."It implies that they did it without compulsion, and with joy. Religion is not compulsion. They who become Christians do it cheerfully; they do it rejoicing in the privilege of becoming reconciled to God through Jesus Christ. Though so many received his word and were baptized, yet it is implied that there were others who did not. It is probable that there were multitudes assembled who were alarmed, but who did not receive the word with joy. In all revivals there are many who become alarmed, and who are anxious about their souls, but who refuse to embrace the gospel, and again become thoughtless, and are ruined.
His word - The message which Peter had spoken respecting the pardon of sin through Jesus Christ.
Were baptized - That is, those who professed a readiness to embrace the offers of salvation. The narrative plainly implies that this was done the same day. Their conversion was instantaneous. The demand on them was to yield themselves at once to God. And their profession was made, and the ordinance which sealed their profession administered without delay.
And the same day - The discourse of Peter commenced at nine o’ clock in the morning, Act 2:15. How long it continued it is not said; but the ceremony of admitting them to the church and of baptizing them was evidently performed on the same day. The mode in which this is done is not mentioned; but it is highly improbable that in the midst of the city of Jerusalem three thousand persons were wholly immersed in one day. The whole narrative supposes that it was all done in the city; and yet there is no probability that there were conveniences there for immersing so many persons in a single day. Besides, in the ordinary way of administering baptism by immersion, it is difficult to conceive that so many persons could have been immersed in so short a time. There is, indeed, here no positive proof that they were not immersed; but the narrative is one of those incidental circumstances often much more satisfactory than philological discussion, that show the extreme improbability that all this was done by wholly immersing them in water. It may be further remarked that here is an example of very quick admission to the church. It was the first great work of grace under the gospel. It was the model of all revivals of religion. And it was doubtless intended that this should be a specimen of the manner in which the ministers of religion should act in regard to admissions to the Christian church. Prudence is indeed required; but this example furnishes no warrant for advising those who profess their willingness to obey Jesus Christ, to delay uniting with the church. If persons give evidence of piety, of true hatred of sin, and of attachment to the Lord Jesus; they should unite themselves to his people without delay.
There were added - To the company of disciples, or to the followers of Christ.
Souls - Persons. Compare 1Pe 3:20; Gen 12:5. It is not affirmed that all this took place in one part of Jerusalem, or that it was all done at once; but it is probable that this was what was afterward ascertained to be the fruit of this day’ s labor, the result of this revival of religion. This was the first effusion of the Holy Spirit under the preaching of the gospel; and it shows that such scenes are to be expected in the church, and that the gospel is suited to work a rapid and mighty change in the hearts of people.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:42 - -- And they continued stedfastly - They persevered in, or they adhered to. This is the inspired record of the result. That any of these apostatize...
And they continued stedfastly - They persevered in, or they adhered to. This is the inspired record of the result. That any of these apostatized is nowhere recorded, and is not to be presumed. Though they had been suddenly converted; though they were suddenly admitted to the church; though they were exposed to much persecution and contempt, and to many trials, yet the record is that they adhered to the doctrines and duties of the Christian religion. The word rendered "continued stedfastly"-
The apostles’ doctrine - This does not mean that they held or believed the doctrines of the apostles, though that was true; but it means that they adhered to, or attended on, their teaching or instruction. The word doctrine has now a technical sense, and means a collection and arrangement of abstract views supposed to be contained in the Bible. In the Scriptures the word means simply "teaching"; and the expression here denotes that they continued to attend on their instructions. One evidence of conversion is a desire to be instructed in the doctrines and duties of religion, and a willingness to attend on the preaching of the gospel.
And fellowship - The word rendered "fellowship,"
Breaking of bread - The Syriac renders this "the eucharist"or the Lord’ s Supper. It cannot, however, be determined whether this refers to their partaking of their ordinary food together, or to feasts of charity, or to the Lord’ s Supper. The bread of the Hebrews was made commonly into cakes, thin, hard, and brittle, so that it was broken instead of being cut. Hence, to denote "intimacy or friendship,"the phrase "to break bread together"would be very expressive in the same way as the Greeks denoted it by drinking together,
In prayers - This was one effect of the influence of the Spirit, and an evidence of their change. A genuine revival will be always followed by a love of prayer.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:43 - -- And fear came - That is, there was great reverence or awe. The multitude had just before derided them Act 2:13; but so striking and manifest wa...
And fear came - That is, there was great reverence or awe. The multitude had just before derided them Act 2:13; but so striking and manifest was the power of God on this occasion, that it silenced all clamors, and produced a general veneration and awe. The effect of a great work of God’ s grace is commonly to produce an unusual seriousness and solemnity in a community, even among those who are not converted. It restrains, subdues, and silences opposition.
Every soul - Every person or individual; that is, upon the people generally; not only on those who became Christians, but upon the multitudes who witnessed these things. All things were suited to produce this fear: the recent crucifixion of Jesus of Nazareth; the wonders that attended that event; the events of the day of Pentecost; and the miracles performed by the apostles, were all suited to diffuse solemnity, thought, anxiety through the community.
Many wonders and signs - See the notes on Act 2:22. This was promised by the Saviour, Mar 16:17. Some of the miracles which they performed are specified in the following chapters.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:44 - -- All that believed - That is, that believed that Jesus was the Messiah; for that was the distinguishing point by which they were known from othe...
All that believed - That is, that believed that Jesus was the Messiah; for that was the distinguishing point by which they were known from others.
Were together - Were united; were joined in the same thing. It does not mean that they lived in the same house, but they were united in the same community, or engaged in the same thing. They were doubtless often together in the same place for prayer and praise. One of the best means for strengthening the faith of young converts is for them often to meet together for prayer, conversation, and praise.
Had all things common - That is, all their property or possessions. See Act 4:32-37; Act 5:1-10. The apostles, in the time of the Saviour, evidently had all their property in common stock, and Judas was made their treasurer. They regarded themselves as one family, having common needs, and there was no use or propriety in their possessing extensive property by themselves. Yet even then it is probable that some of them retained an interest in their property which was not supposed to be necessary to be devoted to the common use. It is evident that John thus possessed property which he retained, Joh 19:27. And it is clear that the Saviour did not command them to give up their property into a common stock, nor did the apostles enjoin it: Act 5:4, "While it remained, was it not thine own? and after it was sold was it not in thine own power?"It was, therefore, perfectly voluntary, and was as evidently adapted to the special circumstances of the early converts. Many of them came from abroad. They were from Parthia, and Media, and Arabia, and Rome, and Africa, etc. It is probable, also, that they now remained longer in Jerusalem than they had at first proposed; and it is not at all improbable that they would be denied now the usual hospitalities of the Jews, and excluded from their customary kindness, because they had embraced Jesus of Nazareth, who had been just put to death. In these circumstances, it was natural and proper that they should share their property while they remained together.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:45 - -- And sold - That is, they sold as much as was necessary in order to procure the means of providing for the needs of each other. Possessions...
And sold - That is, they sold as much as was necessary in order to procure the means of providing for the needs of each other.
Possessions - Property, particularly real estate. This word,
And parted them to all - They distributed them to supply the needs of their poorer brethren, according to their necessities.
As every man had need - This expression limits and fixes the meaning of what is said before. The passage does not mean that they sold all their possessions, or that they relinquished their title to all their property, but that they so far regarded all as common as to be willing to part with it if it was needful to supply the needs of the others. Hence, the property was laid at the disposal of the apostles, and they were desired to distribute it freely to meet the needs of the poor, Act 4:34-35.
This was an important incident in the early propagation of religion, and it may suggest many useful reflections:
1. We see the effect of religion. The love of property is one of the strongest affections which people have. There is nothing that will overcome it but religion. That will; and one of the first effects of the gospel was to loosen the hold of Christians on property.
2. It is the duty of the church to provide for the needs of its poor and needy members. There can be no doubt that property should now be regarded as so far common as that the needs of the poor should be supplied by those who are rich. Compare Mat 26:11.
3. If it be asked why the early disciples evinced this readiness to part with their property in this manner, it may be replied:
(1) That the apostles had done it before them. The family of the Saviour had all things common.
(2)\caps1 i\caps0 t was the nature of religion to do it.
(3)\caps1 t\caps0 he circumstances of the persons assembled on this occasion were such as to require it. They were many of them from distant regions, and probably many of them of the poorer class of the people in Jerusalem. In this they evinced what should be done in behalf of the poor in the church at all times.
4. If it be asked whether this was done commonly among the early Christians, it may be replied that there is no evidence that it was. It is mentioned here, and in Act 4:32-37, and Act 5:1-7. It does not appear that it was done even by all who were afterward converted in Judea; and there is no evidence that it was done in Antioch, Ephesus, Corinth, Philippi, Rome, etc. That the effect of religion was to make people liberal and willing to provide for the poor there can be no doubt. See 2Co 8:19; 2Co 9:2; 1Co 16:2; Gal 2:10. But there is no proof that it was common to part with their possessions and to lay them at the feet of the apostles. Religion does not contemplate, evidently, that people should break up all the arrangements in society, but it contemplates that those who have property should be ready and willing to part with it for the help of the poor and needy.
5. If it be asked, then, whether all the arrangements of property should be broken up now, and believers have all things in common, we are prepared to answer "No."Because:
(1) This was an extraordinary case.
(2)\caps1 i\caps0 t was not even enjoined by the apostles on them.
(3)\caps1 i\caps0 t was practiced nowhere else.
(4)\caps1 i\caps0 t would be impracticable. No community where all things were held in common has long prospered. It has been attempted often, by pagans, by infidels, and by fanatical sects of Christians. It ends soon in anarchy, licentiousness, idleness, and profligacy; or the more cunning secure the mass of the property, and control the whole. Until all people are made alike, there could be no hope of such a community; and if there could be, it would not be desirable. God evidently intended that people should be excited to industry by the hope of gain; and then he demands that their gains shall be devoted to his service. Still, this was a noble instance of Christian generosity, and evinced the power of religion in loosing the hold which people commonly have on the world. It rebukes also those professors of religion, of whom, alas, there are many, who give nothing to benefit either the souls or bodies of their fellow-men.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:46 - -- With one accord - Compare Act 1:14; Act 2:1. In the temple - This was the public place of worship; and the disciples were not disposed to...
With one accord - Compare Act 1:14; Act 2:1.
In the temple - This was the public place of worship; and the disciples were not disposed to leave the place where their fathers had so long worshipped God. This does not mean that they were constantly in the temple, but only at the customary hours of prayer - at nine o’ clock in the morning, and at three o’ clock in the afternoon.
And breaking bread - See the notes on Act 2:42.
From house to house - In the margin, "at home."So the Syriac and Arabic. The common interpretation, however, is, that they did it in their various houses, now in this and now in that, as might be convenient. If it refers to their ordinary meals, then it means that they partook in common of what they possessed, and the expression "did eat their meat"seems to imply that this refers to their common meals, and not to the Lord’ s Supper.
Did eat their meat - Did partake of their food. The word "meat"with us is applied to "flesh."In the Bible, and in Old English authors, it is applied to "provisions"of any kind. Here it means all kinds of sustenance; what nourished them -
With gladness - With rejoicing. This is one of the effects of religion. It is far from gloom; it diffuses happiness over the mind; it bestows additional joy in the participation of even our ordinary pleasures.
Singleness of heart - This means with a sincere and pure heart. They were satisfied and thankful. They were not perplexed or anxious; nor were they solicitous for the luxurious living, or aspiring after the vain objects of the people of the world. Compare Rom 12:8; 2Co 1:12; Col 3:22; Eph 6:5.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barnes: Act 2:47 - -- Praising God - See Luk 24:53. And having favour - See Luk 2:52. With all the people - That is, with the great mass of the people; w...
Praising God - See Luk 24:53.
And having favour - See Luk 2:52.
With all the people - That is, with the great mass of the people; with the people generally. It does not mean that all the people had become reconciled to Christianity; but their humble, serious, and devoted lives won the favor of the great mass of the community, and silenced opposition and cavil. This was a remarkable effect, but God has power to silence opposition; and there it nothing so well suited to do this as the humble and consistent lives of his friends.
And the Lord added - See Act 5:14; Act 11:24, etc. It was the Lord who did this. There was no power in man to do it; and the Christian loves to trace all increase of the church to the grace of God.
Added - Caused, or inclined them to be joined to the church.
The church - To the assembly of the followers of Christ -
Such as should be saved - This whole phrase is a translation of a participle -
We have now contemplated the foundation of the Christian church and the first glorious revival of religion. This chapter deserves to be profoundly studied by all ministers of the gospel, as well as by all who pray for the prosperity of the kingdom of God. It should excite our fervent gratitude that God has left this record of the first great work of grace, and our earnest prayers that He would multiply and extend such scenes until the earth shall be filled with His glory.
Poole -> Act 2:13; Act 2:14; Act 2:15; Act 2:16; Act 2:17; Act 2:18; Act 2:19; Act 2:20; Act 2:21; Act 2:22; Act 2:23; Act 2:24; Act 2:25; Act 2:26; Act 2:27; Act 2:28; Act 2:29; Act 2:30; Act 2:31; Act 2:32; Act 2:33; Act 2:34; Act 2:35; Act 2:36; Act 2:37; Act 2:38; Act 2:39; Act 2:40; Act 2:41; Act 2:42; Act 2:43; Act 2:44; Act 2:45; Act 2:46; Act 2:47
Poole: Act 2:13 - -- Others viz. the scribes and Pharisees, and also the inhabitants of Jewry and Jerusalem; who not understanding the languages of other nations, might t...
Others viz. the scribes and Pharisees, and also the inhabitants of Jewry and Jerusalem; who not understanding the languages of other nations, might think the apostles did but babble, and talk idly or rudely, when they spake with other tongues.
New wine or sweet wine; which done, may inebriate; and might be had at that time, though the full vintage was not yet.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:14 - -- Peter standing up it speaks his extraordinary courage; after his stumbling and fall, he runs the faster, being recovered; and begins to verify his na...
Peter standing up it speaks his extraordinary courage; after his stumbling and fall, he runs the faster, being recovered; and begins to verify his name which our Lord had given him, showing himself as firm and stedfast as a rock.
With the eleven the other apostles, probably, spake too in divers languages; but by reason of the shortness of St. Luke’ s intended narrative, and it being to the same purpose, their sermons are omitted.
Men of Judea; such as came from other parts of the country.
Ye that dwell at Jerusalem; such as were constant inhabitants in that city.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:15 - -- For these this proves that the other apostles spake as well as Peter, and were vindicated by him.
Are not drunken he mildly and solidly confutes th...
For these this proves that the other apostles spake as well as Peter, and were vindicated by him.
Are not drunken he mildly and solidly confutes their calumny.
The third hour of the day which answers to our nine o’ clock in the morning, and was the ordinary time for their morning sacrifice and prayer, before which time they did not eat or drink any thing; nay, it is thought on festival days it was usual with them not to eat or drink until the sixth hour, that is, noon time, that they might be more intent upon and fit for the service of the day. How little soever (to our shame) such an argument would be of proof now, it was in their more sober times very conclusive.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:16 - -- God does ordinarily, before that he sends his judgments, and does his strange work, endeavour to reclaim them by mercies: not only Joel, but Isai...
God does ordinarily, before that he sends his judgments, and does his strange work, endeavour to reclaim them by mercies: not only Joel, but Isaiah, Jeremiah, and Ezekiel, and others, prophesied before the destruction of that people and country by Nebuchadnezzar; but now, before the final and total ruin, God sent greater and more than these, and endued them with a greater measure of the Spirit, clearer and fuller light to forewarn them of and deliver them from wrath to come.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:17 - -- In the last days in the time of the Messiah, called the last days frequently, 2Ti 3:1 Heb 1:2 2Pe 3:3 ; as also called the last time, 1Pe 1:5 1Jo ...
In the last days in the time of the Messiah, called the last days frequently, 2Ti 3:1 Heb 1:2 2Pe 3:3 ; as also called the last time, 1Pe 1:5 1Jo 2:18 Jud 1:18 ; because we are now under the last and most perfect dispensation of the things of God, and no other is to be looked for until the consummation of all things.
I will pour out of my Spirit before the Spirit was given in lesser measures, and comparatively but by drops, here a little, and there a little; now more largely, even to overflow.
Upon all flesh; all sorts of men, as well Gentiles as Jews, contrary unto their proud conceit, that God dwelt in none out of the land of Israel.
Daughters shall prophesy; fulfilled in Anna the prophetess, Luk 2:36 , and in the four daughters of Philip, Luk 21:9 .
Visions; these were formerly either representations more inward to their mind, as Isaiah’ s and Jeremiah’ s were; or more outward, to their bodily eye, as Belshazzar’ s was, Dan 5:5 , and such as Peter had, Act 10:11 .
Dreams; by dreams God sometimes manifested his will, as to Joseph; but this is by St. Peter accommodated to the gospel times. The prophets spake suitably to them unto whom they preached; and the apostle rightly understands by these expressions, the manifold and more clear revelation of the will of God in Christ.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:18 - -- On my servants and on my handmaidens to show what all ought to be, that hope to receive any benefit or comfort from the promises of God, either in th...
On my servants and on my handmaidens to show what all ought to be, that hope to receive any benefit or comfort from the promises of God, either in the law or gospel, the Old or New Testament; viz. such as seek and serve God; but to the disobedient and unbelieving there is not a comfortable word in all the book of God. Some read without the pronoun, on servants and handmaids; to show that God doth not despise men of the lowest rank and condition in the world, but that the promise of the Spirit is made unto them also.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:19 - -- As St Peter had declared the promises unto such as would be drawn by the cords of love; so here, on the other side, he useth threatenings, and decla...
As St Peter had declared the promises unto such as would be drawn by the cords of love; so here, on the other side, he useth threatenings, and declares the terrors of the Lord, if so that they will be persuaded. These wonders were such as did precede the destruction of Jerusalem, or shall forerun the destruction of the whole world.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:20 - -- The sun shall be turned into darkness, and the moon into blood this agrees with the other words in the forecited prophecy, Joe 2:31 . How these amazi...
The sun shall be turned into darkness, and the moon into blood this agrees with the other words in the forecited prophecy, Joe 2:31 . How these amazing signs shall be fulfilled, whether literally, and by what means; or whether only that the consternation and dread upon men shall be so great, as expecting the change of the whole frame of nature, is not so material for us to know, as it is to be always prepared for it.
Great and notable day
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:21 - -- That he may prepare thus a people for the Lord, the apostle shows by what means they and we may escape. Pray in faith unto him. The name is that whe...
That he may prepare thus a people for the Lord, the apostle shows by what means they and we may escape. Pray in faith unto him. The name is that whereby any one is known; and the Lord’ s name is his attributes, goodness, power, wisdom, faithfulness, &c.
The name of the Lord is a strong tower: the righteous runneth into it, and is safe, Pro 18:10 .
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:22 - -- Jesus of Nazareth for so Pilate had called our Saviour through contempt, in his superscription on the cross: and that they might certainly know of wh...
Jesus of Nazareth for so Pilate had called our Saviour through contempt, in his superscription on the cross: and that they might certainly know of whom he spake, and that he was not now (as formerly) ashamed to own him, he mentions our Saviour under that name here.
Approved demonstrated, and beyond any contradiction proved, to be the Messiah: for this was that great truth St. Peter preached upon, that Christ, whom Pilate had condemned, and called Jesus of Nazareth, was indeed the Son of God, and the true Messiah.
Miracles and wonders and signs the critical difference is not so material; it was ordinary to add many words to show the greatness of the matter spoken of; indeed all sorts of wonderful works Christ did, and so many, and so great, as no variety of words can express.
As ye yourselves also know; those that are not convinced are self-condemned.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:23 - -- Him, being delivered by the determinate counsel and foreknowledge of God: that the apostle might take away the offence of the cross of Christ, he dec...
Him, being delivered by the determinate counsel and foreknowledge of God: that the apostle might take away the offence of the cross of Christ, he declares unto them that he did not suffer by chance, but by the wise and holy providence of God, who had ordered, and by his prophets foretold, what he should suffer before he did enter into glory, Luk 24:26 . Yet this did no way excuse those who were instrumental in his death; for notwithstanding God’ s determinate counsel concerning it, he tells the Jews, ye have taken, &c. The determination of God, as it does not necessitate to, so it does not excuse any from sin.
Have crucified by the Romans, who were truly
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:24 - -- Whom God hath raised up: Christ rose by his own power as God: it being, perhaps, too strong meat to be given at first to such who were under so great...
Whom God hath raised up: Christ rose by his own power as God: it being, perhaps, too strong meat to be given at first to such who were under so great prejudices against our Saviour; but by consequence in the following discourse he sufficiently shows it.
Loosed the same word
The pains of death: though our Lord endured no more pain after he had said, It is finished, and had yielded up the ghost; yet whilst he was in the grave, being under the power of death, the pains of death are said to be loosed at his resurrection.
It was not possible that he should be holden of it long, much less for ever; being such a one as David spake of.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:25 - -- David speaketh concerning him Psa 16:8 .
I foresaw the Lord always before my face: in the psalm it is, I have set the Lord: the apostle following ...
David speaketh concerning him Psa 16:8 .
I foresaw the Lord always before my face: in the psalm it is, I have set the Lord: the apostle following the reading of the Seventy, then in use and known; and to the same sense; for by faith we both see God, and place our confidence in him; David, and especially our Saviour, doing and enduring all things as in the sight of God, whom he knew to be both careful of him, and ready to help him. Thus, in all troubles, there is no such approved comfort, as the seeing or acknowledging the will of God concerning them, his power to preserve us under them, and his promises to deliver us from them. Christ, and all that are Christ’ s, do conflict under the eye and in the sight of God, as soldiers whilst their general looks on.
On my right hand the place of the advocate for one that is accused or endangered.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:26 - -- Therefore because of God’ s nearness to or presence with him,
did my heart rejoice Christ’ s and his people’ s joy is solid and true...
Therefore because of God’ s nearness to or presence with him,
did my heart rejoice Christ’ s and his people’ s joy is solid and true, real and inward, and may bear the test, res severa est verum gaudium.
My tongue in Psa 16:9 , it is my glory, as the tongue is frequently called; communicating our thoughts or apprehensions by speech, being the excellency of a reasonable creature.
My flesh or my body.
Shall rest; or be in the grave, as in a tabernacle, ordinarily a movable, always no durable abiding place.
In hope; that is, of the resurrection, and going out of that tabernacle of the grave.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:27 - -- My soul that is, me: the soul is put for the person, as Rom 13:1 , Let every soul be subject; and sometimes for a dead body, as Lev 19:28 Num 5:2 ...
My soul that is, me: the soul is put for the person, as Rom 13:1 , Let every soul be subject; and sometimes for a dead body, as Lev 19:28 Num 5:2 , and in divers other places,
In hell the word
Thine Holy One as being anointed, sanctified, and sent by God.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:28 - -- Thou hast made known to me God is frequently said to make those mercies known to us which he bestows upon us.
The ways of life of a true life, whic...
Thou hast made known to me God is frequently said to make those mercies known to us which he bestows upon us.
The ways of life of a true life, which is life indeed. David in these words celebrates God’ s delivering of him from his grievous afflictions and exile; in which he was looked upon by others, and by himself, as a dead man, yet was brought again to see the temple, and enjoy the ordinances of God, without which his life was as no life unto him. So our Saviour, after his death and passion, arose, and ascended into heaven, and lives for ever to make intercession for us.
With thy countenance that is, with thy presence, or manifestation of thy love and favour.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:29 - -- Men and brethren St. Peter bespeaks this attention and favour, intimating he was one of the same nation with themselves, than which nothing could mor...
Men and brethren St. Peter bespeaks this attention and favour, intimating he was one of the same nation with themselves, than which nothing could more recommend him. David was had in great veneration, and his memory very precious amongst this people, as was Abraham’ s, Isaac’ s, and Jacob’ s; who were the chief of their fathers.
He is both dead and buried as in 1Ki 2:10 , and elsewhere, is recorded of him, which they firmly believed.
His sepulchre or monument, is with us either not wholly spoiled by the barbarous enemies, who had destroyed Jerusalem; or rather repaired after the captivity, to keep up the memory of so great and good a man. But by this it appeared, that David did not speak these things concerning himself, who must needs have seen corruption, (themselves being witnesses), for on that account they respected his tomb, as being the repository of his ashes.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:30 - -- Had sworn with an oath not barely had sworn, which had been sufficient; but to show the excellency of the matter, and the necessity of our believing ...
Had sworn with an oath not barely had sworn, which had been sufficient; but to show the excellency of the matter, and the necessity of our believing of it, as also the solemnity of the words, Psa 132:11 .
Of the fruit of his loins such as should descend from him, as the virgin Mary did.
According to the flesh as to his human nature, which our Saviour did truly partake of, being in the form of a servant.
He would raise up Christ by the power of the Holy Ghost in the womb of his virgin mother, as to his incarnation; and by the same power out of the grave, in his resurrection.
To sit on his throne as Luk 1:32,33 : not as a temporal king, for his kingdom is not of this world; but as David ruled over all the people of God, so does Christ, and shall do for ever.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:31 - -- He seeing this before by a prophetical eye, unto which any thing that was revealed was as certain and manifest, as aught could be to the eye of the b...
He seeing this before by a prophetical eye, unto which any thing that was revealed was as certain and manifest, as aught could be to the eye of the body. By the same prophetical Spirit, and with the same certainty, which he space of the incarnation, he
spake also of the resurrection of Christ Of the rest, see Act 2:27 .
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:32 - -- This Jesus whom ye crucified, and we preach,
Whereof we all are witnesses: they had now received the power spoken of and promised Act 1:6 , and tes...
This Jesus whom ye crucified, and we preach,
Whereof we all are witnesses: they had now received the power spoken of and promised Act 1:6 , and testify what they had heard, and seen, and felt, and all agree in; though they could get nothing by it, but hatred and persecution, nay, death.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:33 - -- By the right hand of God that is, by the power of God spoken after the manner of men, the right hand being that we commonly do any thing with. Some r...
By the right hand of God that is, by the power of God spoken after the manner of men, the right hand being that we commonly do any thing with. Some read at the right hand of God; and then the apostle preaches Christ’ s ascension too, and his being justified by God, though he had been condemned by men.
Having received of the Father the promise of the Holy Ghost: Psa 68:18
Which ye now see in the fiery cloven tongues; and hear in the divers languages which are spoken.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:34 - -- For David is not ascended into the heavens hence St. Peter here proves, that these words, spoken by David, were not principally to be understood conc...
For David is not ascended into the heavens hence St. Peter here proves, that these words, spoken by David, were not principally to be understood concerning himself, but concerning Christ the Messiah; for David, as to his body, was in the sepulchre, which on that account was kept amongst them.
The Lord said unto my Lord the eternal Father unto his eternal Son, who was now made flesh— hence our Saviour proves his Divinity, Mat 22:45 . The words here referred to are Psa 110:1 .
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:35 - -- Christ is commissioned and empowered to reign over and govern all creatures, and all their actions, till the consummation of all things, so long as ...
Christ is commissioned and empowered to reign over and govern all creatures, and all their actions, till the consummation of all things, so long as the world lasts, in which he, his people, and truths, will have enemies, Eph 1:20-22 1Co 15:27,28 .
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:36 - -- This is the conclusion which the apostle infers from the premises, applying what he had said very close and home, or it would not in all likelihood ...
This is the conclusion which the apostle infers from the premises, applying what he had said very close and home, or it would not in all likelihood have had so good an effect.
Ye have crucified ye are the men.
Lord over all the creatures, beyond what the first Adam was; and Christ King over all the people of God, to rule in them, and reign for them; for to this purpose he was the Christ, or the Anointed of God, declared by God to be so, and owned for such by all that believed in him.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:37 - -- They were pricked in their heart so great and true their grief, they were concerned as if they had been run through: (the pains the mind suffer are m...
They were pricked in their heart so great and true their grief, they were concerned as if they had been run through: (the pains the mind suffer are most acute): this was foretold, Zec 12:10 .
Men and brethren an ordinary compellation which the apostle had given them, Act 2:29 .
What shall we do? not, What shall we say, or believe? Conversion, if real, goes further than profession, and is in heart and deed, not in speech and word only: they desire to know if there be any hope, that such sinners as they might obtain forgiveness of their sins.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:38 - -- Repent which includes amendment of life, Mat 3:8 Luk 3:8 . In the name of Jesus Christ not excluding the name of the Father and the Holy Ghost, in w...
Repent which includes amendment of life, Mat 3:8 Luk 3:8 . In the name of Jesus Christ not excluding the name of the Father and the Holy Ghost, in whose name, as well as in the name of the Son, they were to baptize, Mat 28:19 : but the name of Jesus is here mentioned, because they had not yet known (but persecuted and slain) him, whom henceforward they must profess; and that they look for pardon and salvation only through him. For the remission of sins thus Saul, or Paul, is said to wash away his sins by baptism, Act 22:16 ; and this apostle elsewhere says, that baptism saves us, 1Pe 3:21 ; which he explains to be, not the putting away of the filth of the flesh, but the answer of a good conscience, & c. The gift of the Holy Ghost:
1. His internal gifts, confirmation and strengthening in the faith.
2. External gifts, as that of speaking with tongues, which they heard. Both, or either of these, according to their conditions or stations, God would bestow upon them.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:39 - -- For the promise is unto you lest they should doubt of pardon and grace, their sin having been so great. St. Peter gives them a ground of hope, they b...
For the promise is unto you lest they should doubt of pardon and grace, their sin having been so great. St. Peter gives them a ground of hope, they being the descendants from Abraham, unto whom especially this was promised, Jer 31:34 .
And to all that are afar off that is, to the Gentiles as well as to the Jews, who were said to be a people near unto God, as the Gentiles were said to be afar off, Isa 57:19 Eph 2:13 .
Even as many as the Lord our God shall call vocation, whether external by the word only, or internal by the Spirit also, depends on the pleasure of God; but the same promises of pardon and acceptance upon repentance made unto the Jews, are as effectually to be trusted unto by any of the Gentiles, as by any formerly amongst the Jews.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:40 - -- Many other words: the sermons of the apostles, or of our Saviour, are not all set down by the holy writers; but only so much as God saw necessary for...
Many other words: the sermons of the apostles, or of our Saviour, are not all set down by the holy writers; but only so much as God saw necessary for his church to know and believe.
Testify and exhort using God’ s name and authority, and calling him as it were to witness.
Save yourselves: no less than the salvation of our souls depends upon our forsaking wicked and profane persons in their ungodly courses.
From this untoward generation; the whole world lies in wickedness; but especially the scribes and Pharisees, and other such declared enemies of Christ Jesus.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:41 - -- They that gladly received his word some still remained in their unbelief and hardness of heart; though never men spake as the apostles now spake, wit...
They that gladly received his word some still remained in their unbelief and hardness of heart; though never men spake as the apostles now spake, with divers tongues, &c.
Unto them to the church, or the hundred and twenty formerly mentioned, Act 1:15 . This was the effect of Christ’ s prayer for his persecutors, Luk 23:34 ; and of the promise of the Spirit now fulfilled, whereby in the day of his power they were made willing.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:42 - -- They continued stedfastly speaks the reality of their conversion, and that they were not only for the present affected with what they had heard and s...
They continued stedfastly speaks the reality of their conversion, and that they were not only for the present affected with what they had heard and seen. These three parts of worship were frequently, if not always, in those purer times used together: though some understand by breaking of bread, their civil fellowship and community, yet breaking being a holy rite used by our Saviour, at the institution of his supper, Mat 26:26 , and breaking of bread being here put in conjunction with preaching and praying, the celebration of the eucharist, if not only meant, is chiefly to he understood in this place.
Prayers all those kinds of prayers mentioned by St. Paul, 1Ti 2:1 , as also their frequent praying, is implied. Thus, by a united force, they laboured to pull down mercies upon themselves and others, and to do violence unto the kingdom of heaven.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:43 - -- Upon every soul that is, upon every man; not only on them that were present, and persuaded to believe on Christ, whom the apostles preached; but on s...
Upon every soul that is, upon every man; not only on them that were present, and persuaded to believe on Christ, whom the apostles preached; but on such also as were informed of those miraculous things which now happened; so that by this means the apostles were had in great esteem and respect by the people.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:44 - -- All that believed were together not that they lived together in one house or street, but that they met (and that frequently) together in the holy exe...
All that believed were together not that they lived together in one house or street, but that they met (and that frequently) together in the holy exercises of their religion; and that manner of some, which St. Paul speaks of, Heb 10:25 , to forsake the assembling of themselves together, was a sin not yet known in the church.
And had all things common this was only at that place, Jerusalem, and at that time, when the wants of some, and the charity of others, may well be presumed to be extraordinary; and there is no such thing as community of goods here required or practised. Christ’ s gospel does not destroy the law; and the eighth commandment is still in force, which it could not be, if there were no propriety, or meum and tuum, now; nay, after this, the possession which Ananias sold is adjudged by this apostle to have been Ananias’ s own, and so was the money too which he had received for it, Act 5:4 . And these all things which they had in common, must either be restrained to such things as every one freely laid aside for the poor; or that it speaks the extraordinary charitable disposition of those new converts, that they would rather have parted with any thing, nay, with their all, than that any of their poor brethren should have wanted.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:45 - -- Those proportions of their estate they set apart to this charitable work; whether they did arise out of the sale of house or land, called
possessio...
Those proportions of their estate they set apart to this charitable work; whether they did arise out of the sale of house or land, called
possessions or of any chattels or movable estate, called here goods: but that they did not divest themselves of all property, appears in that we find soon after this, Act 12:12 , Mary the mother of St. Mark to have a house; and Lydia, after she was baptized, did not renounce any propriety in her house, Act 16:15 , but entreated St. Paul, and those who were with him, to come into her house, &c.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:46 - -- In the temple in the court and porches of the temple, whither the people did use to resort at the time of the morning and evening sacrifice and praye...
In the temple in the court and porches of the temple, whither the people did use to resort at the time of the morning and evening sacrifice and prayers, that by means of the great concourse at such times they might have the better opportunity to preach the gospel amongst them; casting that net where they found most fish.
Breaking bread not only celebrating the eucharist, but their love feasts which they usually had at that time, as 1Co 11:21,22 .
From house to house now here, now there, as they could conveniently; the richer also entertaining their poorer brethren at their tables.
Did eat their meat with gladness and singleness of heart: if the former words be understood of the Lord’ s supper, then these words speak the great spiritual strength, cheer, and comfort they got by it: if we understand them of the ordinary meats which they willingly bestowed one upon another, the rich were more than recompensed with inward peace and satisfaction, for what they gave unto their poor brethren.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Poole: Act 2:47 - -- Praising God acknowledging him who teacheth one to want, and another to abound.
Having favour with all the people that is, generally to be understo...
Praising God acknowledging him who teacheth one to want, and another to abound.
Having favour with all the people that is, generally to be understood, amongst them that continued yet without the pale of the church; the goodness, meekness, and patience of the apostles, and the rest of the believers, did wonderfully prevail to beget a good opinion of them.
The Lord added to the church salvation is (to be sure) only from the Lord; not Peter’ s sermons, no, nor the miracles of fiery cloven tongues, and the rushing mighty wind, could have converted any, but
PBC: Act 2:23 - -- God delivered Christ, and wicked men slew Him. This was not an accident. This was according to prophecy. This was according to the Covenant of Redempt...
God delivered Christ, and wicked men slew Him. This was not an accident. This was according to prophecy. This was according to the Covenant of Redemption. Christ is referred to in Scripture as " the Lamb slain from the foundation of the world." None of this took God by surprise. God was in complete control of every minute detail. None of this was accidental. Many, many prophecies were fulfilled in detail.
225
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
PBC: Act 2:39 - -- Each term carries its unique meaning. The final description, the catchall phrase that richly instructs us, qualifies the recipient of the gospel. " Fo...
Each term carries its unique meaning. The final description, the catchall phrase that richly instructs us, qualifies the recipient of the gospel. " For the promise is unto..., even as many as the Lord our God shall call." Peter addressed his sermon to those whom the Lord calls. We should do likewise.
Haydock: Act 2:14 - -- But Peter standing up, &c. A wonderful change which the Holy Ghost, at his coming, in a moment wrought in the apostles, as we see in the person of S...
But Peter standing up, &c. A wonderful change which the Holy Ghost, at his coming, in a moment wrought in the apostles, as we see in the person of St. Peter, who before, when questioned by a silly girl, denied his master, now he values not all the Sanhedrim of the Scribes, Pharisees, and magistrates; he boldly and publicly charges them with the murder of Jesus, their Lord, and their Christ. (ver. 36) (Witham) ---
As the prince of the apostolic college, and head of the Church, under Jesus Christ, hence Peter speaks in the name of the other apostles also, gives an account of the miracle, and promulgates the evangelical law. (Menochius) ---
Newly replenished with all knowledge and fortitude, and full of the holy Spirit, he her maketh his first sermon. (Bristow)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: Act 2:15 - -- About nine in the morning. On festival days, the Jews did not eat till the morning devotions were finished, about mid-day. (Bible de Vence)
About nine in the morning. On festival days, the Jews did not eat till the morning devotions were finished, about mid-day. (Bible de Vence)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: Act 2:17 - -- In the last days, or the latter days, meaning the time of the Messias, I will pour out my Spirit upon all flesh, that is, all persons. See Joel ii...
In the last days, or the latter days, meaning the time of the Messias, I will pour out my Spirit upon all flesh, that is, all persons. See Joel ii. 28. (Witham)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: Act 2:19 - -- I will shew wonders, &c. These prodigies are commonly expounded of those that shall forerun the last day; or of the prognostics of the destruction o...
I will shew wonders, &c. These prodigies are commonly expounded of those that shall forerun the last day; or of the prognostics of the destruction of Jerusalem, which was a figure of the destruction of the world. (Witham) ---
Blood, fire, &c. These prodigies were accomplished at our Saviour's death, or before the destruction of Jerusalem. We must not expect in these prophecies, where the descriptions are so grand, pathetic, and hyperbolical, to find that the accomplishment of them is literal, and precisely according to terms. The sun shall suffer an eclipse, the moon turn red, like blood, &c. (Calmet)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: Act 2:22-23 - -- Jesus, ... a man, who suffered as man, though he was both God and man. ---
Delivered by the determinate decree, or counsel; to wit, by that eternal...
Jesus, ... a man, who suffered as man, though he was both God and man. ---
Delivered by the determinate decree, or counsel; to wit, by that eternal decree, that the Son of God should become man. He mentions this decree, and foreknowledge of God, to signify that Christ suffered not by chance, nor unwillingly, but what God, and he as God, had decreed. (Witham) ---
By the determinate, &c. god delivered up his Son; and his Son delivered up himself, for the love of us, and for the sake of our salvation: and so Christ's being delivered up was holy, and was God's own determination. But they who betrayed and crucified him, did wickedly, following therein their own malice, and the instigation of the devil; not the will and determination of God, who was by no means the author of their wickedness; though he permitted it; because he could, and did draw out of it so great a good, viz. the salvation of man. (Challoner)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: Act 2:24 - -- Having loosed the sorrows [2] of hell, &c. In the ordinary Greek copies, of death. As to the sense of this place, 1. It is certain Christ suffer...
Having loosed the sorrows [2] of hell, &c. In the ordinary Greek copies, of death. As to the sense of this place, 1. It is certain Christ suffered the pains and pangs of a violent death. 2. That his soul suffered no pains after death, nor in any place called hell. 3. We believe, as in the Apostles' Creed, that his blessed soul descended into hell, that is, to that place in the inferior parts of the earth, (Ephesians iv. 9.) which we commonly call Limbus Patrum [Limbo of the Fathers], not to suffer, but to free the souls of the just from thence. ---
As it was impossible he should be held there, either by death, or hell, his soul being always united to the divine person: and his rising again being foretold in the Psalms, in the words here cited. (Witham) ---
Having overcome the grievous pains of death, and all the power of hell. (Challoner) ---
Not that Jesus suffered any thing after his death; that was impossible. But these pains were loosed in his regard, because he was preserved from them, as the bird is preserved from the nets of the fowlers, which are broken before it is taken in them. (St. Augustine, ep. ad. Olimp. xcv.) ---
Moreover he loosed others of those pains. (St. Augustine, lib. xii, chap. 13. de Gen. ad lit.)
===============================
[BIBLIOGRAPHY]
Solutis doloribus Inferni. Greek: lusas tas odinas adou, though in the common Greek copies, Greek: thanatou. See St. John Chrysostom, hom vi.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: Act 2:27 - -- Thou wilt not leave [3] my soul in hell. This is also the Protestant translation; and the manner in which Beza translates it, is both very false an...
Thou wilt not leave [3] my soul in hell. This is also the Protestant translation; and the manner in which Beza translates it, is both very false and ridiculous, thou shalt not leave my carcass in the grave. For allowing that the Latin and Greek word, which is here translated hell, may signify sometimes, the grave; yet no excuse can be made for putting carcass, where the Greek, as well as Latin, signifies the soul. And for the doctrine of Christ's descending into hell, even the learned Dr. Pearson on the Creed, observes with Catholics, that the article of the creed, wherein we say, he descended into hell, cannot be the same as to say, his body descended into the grave, because in the foregoing words we profess that he was dead and buried. (Witham) ---
Beza plainly confesseth that he translateth the text thus: Thou shalt not leave my carcass in the grave, against the doctrine of purgatory, and Christ's descending into hell, although he alloweth, that most of the ancient Fathers were in that error. Thus opposing himself to plain Scripture and to the ancient Fathers, perverting the former, and contemning the latter, to overthrow an article of the apostles' creed. ( He descended into hell. New Test. in 1556.)
===============================
[BIBLIOGRAPHY]
My soul in hell. Animam meam in Inferno, Greek: ten psuchen mou eis adou.
====================
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: Act 2:31 - -- Foreseeing he (David) spoke of the resurrection of Christ. St. Peter shews them that the prophetical words of the Psalm, agree not to David in per...
Foreseeing he (David) spoke of the resurrection of Christ. St. Peter shews them that the prophetical words of the Psalm, agree not to David in person, he being dead, and his body having remained in the grave, without rising from the dead. (Witham)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: Act 2:33 - -- He hath poured forth this, which we see, and hear, by the effects, by the noise, as it were of thunder, by our speaking languages, &c. (Witham) ---
...
He hath poured forth this, which we see, and hear, by the effects, by the noise, as it were of thunder, by our speaking languages, &c. (Witham) ---
It does not appear that the holy Spirit was visible to the multitude, whom St. Peter addressed. But they perceived sensible marks of his presence, in the great noise, which had called them together, and the divers tongues spoken by illiterate men, who had never studied. (Haydock)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: Act 2:37 - -- They had compunction in their heart, with sorrow for their sins, especially against their Messias. (Witham)
They had compunction in their heart, with sorrow for their sins, especially against their Messias. (Witham)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: Act 2:38 - -- Be baptized: believing and making profession to believe, and hope for salvation, by the merits of Jesus Christ. Thus you shall receive the gift of ...
Be baptized: believing and making profession to believe, and hope for salvation, by the merits of Jesus Christ. Thus you shall receive the gift of the Holy Ghost, the grace of God, and perhaps those other gifts of speaking with tongues, working miracles, &c. (Witham) ---
The gift of the Holy Ghost. That is, justifying grace, which is infused in our hearts by the laver of regeneration. The exterior gifts of the Holy Ghost, the gifts of tongues, of miracles, prophecy, &c. were, in the beginning of the Church, more regularly the consequence of confirmation or imposition of hands. (Calmet)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: Act 2:39 - -- The promise is to you. The good tidings of salvation were first announced to the Jew, then to the Gentile; first to the domestics, then to the stran...
The promise is to you. The good tidings of salvation were first announced to the Jew, then to the Gentile; first to the domestics, then to the strangers, who are far off. It is rather singular, that St. Peter, after here so clearly shewing that the Gentiles are called to the faith, should afterwards have made such objections to go to baptize Cornelius, because he was a Gentile. This can only be reconciled, by supposing, he did not know distinctly the time nor the manner of their vocation. (Calmet)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: Act 2:40 - -- And with a great many other words did he testify and exhort them. St. Luke only gives an abridgment of those exhortations, which St. Peter, and the ...
And with a great many other words did he testify and exhort them. St. Luke only gives an abridgment of those exhortations, which St. Peter, and the apostles frequently gave to all the people. St. Peter, as St. John Chrysostom observes, and as we see in these Acts, was the mouth of all the rest. And on this first day of Pentecost, about three thousand were converted. (Witham)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: Act 2:42 - -- In the communication of the breaking of bread, by which some understand their ordinary meals, and eating together; others, of the celestial bread of ...
In the communication of the breaking of bread, by which some understand their ordinary meals, and eating together; others, of the celestial bread of the holy Sacrament, Greek: tou arton, panis illius, scilicet Eucharistiæ. The Eucharist is called both by St. Luke and St. Paul, the breaking of bread. (Menochius, in ver. 42. and 46.) ---
In the Syriac, for Greek: artou, is a term that means Eucharist, both here and in Acts xx. as the learned Joannes Harlemius remarks in Indice Bibliorum. ---
St. Luke also gives here some account of the manner of living of these first Christians. 1. They were together, united in perfect charity. 2. They were frequently in the temple, and praying together. 3. They had all possessions in common. 4. they went from house to house to convert souls, taking the food they found with joy, and simplicity of heart, their number daily increasing. 5. St. Luke says they were in favour, and esteemed by all the people. 6. The apostles did many prodigies and miracles, to confirm their doctrine, which struck others with great terror and horror for their past lives. (Witham)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: Act 2:44 - -- This living in common is not a precept for all Christians, but a life of perfection and counsel, for such as are called to it by heaven. See St. Augu...
This living in common is not a precept for all Christians, but a life of perfection and counsel, for such as are called to it by heaven. See St. Augustine in Psalm cxii. and ep. cix. the practice of which is a striking proof of the one true Church, which has come down from the apostles.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: Act 2:46 - -- In the temple. Although by the death of our Saviour, the ceremonies and sacrifices were abrogated, and the new alliance had succeeded to the old, st...
In the temple. Although by the death of our Saviour, the ceremonies and sacrifices were abrogated, and the new alliance had succeeded to the old, still it was not in the design of God, that the faithful should separated themselves from the rest of the Jews, or entirely give up the observances of the law. They continued to observe them, as long as the utility of the Church required it, but they observed them not as Jews. Thus they avoided giving scandal to the weak, and driving them from submitting to the doctrines of the Church. They disposed them insensibly to a more pure and spiritual worship. (St. John Chrysostom, in Act. hom. vii.) ---
This was burying the synagogue with honour.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Haydock: Act 2:47 - -- More and more he added daily to the Church, as it is clearly expressed in the Greek, prosetithei te ekklesia, that we may see the visible propagatio...
More and more he added daily to the Church, as it is clearly expressed in the Greek, prosetithei te ekklesia, that we may see the visible propagation and increase of the same. We may here, and throughout the whole book, observe a visible society of men joined in Christ, which visible society may be traced through ecclesiastical history, down to our days, and which will continue, in virtue of Christ's promise, to the end of time, as the point of union, by which the true disciples of Jesus Christ are to be connected together in one body, and one spirit; "one Lord, one faith, one baptism." (Ephesians iv. 5.) This book can shew the true Church ever visible, and ever speaking with authority to all that do not willingly shut their eyes, as plainly as the gospel doth shew the true Christ. "Every where the Church proclaims the truth; she is the candlestick, with the seven lamps (Exodus xxv.); bearing the light of Christ, Greek: eptamukos, " says St. Irenæus; which light nothing can obscure. Hence St. John Chrysostom says, "sooner shall the sun be extinguished, than the Church be obscured;" Greek: eukolioteron ton elion sbesthenai, e ten ekklesian aphanisthenai.
Gill -> Act 2:13; Act 2:14; Act 2:15; Act 2:16; Act 2:17; Act 2:18; Act 2:19; Act 2:20; Act 2:21; Act 2:22; Act 2:23; Act 2:24; Act 2:25; Act 2:26; Act 2:27; Act 2:28; Act 2:29; Act 2:30; Act 2:31; Act 2:32; Act 2:33; Act 2:34; Act 2:35; Act 2:36; Act 2:37; Act 2:38; Act 2:39; Act 2:40; Act 2:41; Act 2:42; Act 2:43; Act 2:44; Act 2:45; Act 2:46; Act 2:47
Gill: Act 2:13 - -- Others mocking, said,.... These were the native inhabitants of Jerusalem, the common people; and it may be also the Scribes and Pharisees, who did not...
Others mocking, said,.... These were the native inhabitants of Jerusalem, the common people; and it may be also the Scribes and Pharisees, who did not understand the languages in which the apostles spake, and therefore derided them both by words and gestures:
these men are full of new wine; the Syriac, version adds, "and are drunk"; a very foolish and impertinent cavil this; there was, at this time of the year, no new wine, just pressed, or in the fat; and if there had been any, and they were full of it, it could never have furnished them with a faculty of speaking with many tongues; men generally lose their tongues by intemperance. They were indeed filled with wine, but not with wine, the juice of the grape, either new or old; but with spiritual wine, with the gifts of the Spirit of God, by which they spake with divers tongues. They might hope this insinuation, that they were drunk with wine, would take and be received, since it was a feasting time, the feast of Pentecost; though, as Peter afterwards observes; it was too early in the day to imagine this to be their case.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:14 - -- But Peter standing up with the eleven,.... Apostles; their number being now complete, Matthias being chosen in the room of Judas. These all at once ro...
But Peter standing up with the eleven,.... Apostles; their number being now complete, Matthias being chosen in the room of Judas. These all at once rose up, as abhorring the fact they were charged with, and to show the falsehood of it, and to vindicate themselves; when Peter, as their mouth, stood "in the midst" of them, as the Ethiopic version reads, with great courage, boldness, and intrepidity of mind: and "lift up his voice"; that he might be heard by the whole multitude, that was gathered together, as well as to show his zeal and fervour of spirit, and fortitude of mind; for being endued with the Spirit from on high, he was fearless of men, who but a little while ago was frightened by a servant maid,
And said unto them, ye men of Judea, and all ye that dwell at Jerusalem; which shows that they were the natives and citizens of Jerusalem that mocked and scoffed; for to these the apostle addresses himself,
Be this known unto you, and hearken to my words; as follows.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:15 - -- For these are not drunken,.... Meaning not only the eleven apostles, but the rest of the hundred and twenty, on whom also the Spirit was poured forth,...
For these are not drunken,.... Meaning not only the eleven apostles, but the rest of the hundred and twenty, on whom also the Spirit was poured forth, and who were endowed with his extraordinary gifts:
as ye suppose; and had given out that they were: and this shows the sense of being filled with new wine; that they meant that they were really drunk, and which they believed, or at least would have had others believe it; the unreasonableness of which supposition and suggestion the apostle argues from the time of day:
seeing it is but the third hour of the day; or nine of the clock in the morning: for till this time it was not usual with the Jews, if men of any sobriety or religion, so much as to taste anything: the rules are these h,
"it is forbidden a man to taste anything, or do any work after break of day, until he has prayed the morning prayer.
Now
"the morning prayer, the precept concerning it is, that a man should begin to pray as soon as the sun shines out; and its time is until the end of the fourth hour, which is the third part of the day i.
So that a man might not taste anything, either of eatables or drinkables, until the fourth hour, or ten o'clock in the morning: hence it is said k, that "after they offered the daily sacrifice they ate bread,
or on the fourth hour, and sooner than this it was not lawful to eat, even ever so little; and whoever did, was not reckoned fit to be conversed with,
"Says R. Isaac l, whoever eats a green or herb before the fourth hour, it is forbidden to converse with him; and the same says, it is unlawful to eat a raw herb before the fourth hour. Amemar, and Mar Zutra, and Rab Ashe were sitting, and they brought before them a raw herb before the fourth hour. Amemar and Rab Ashe ate, and Mar Zutra did not eat: they said to him, what is thy meaning? (he replied) that R. Isaac said, whoever eats a herb before the fourth hour, it is forbidden to converse with him.
The time for taking food by persons of different characters, is thus expressed by them:
"the first hour is the time of eating for the Lydians, the second for thieves, the third for heirs, the fourth for labourers, the fifth for every man; is it not so? Saith R. Papa, the fourth is the time of repast for every man; but (the truth is) the fourth is the time of eating for every man, the fifth for labourers, and the sixth for the disciples of the wise men m.
Hence that advice n,
""at the fourth hour", go into a cook's shop, (or tavern,) if thou seest a man drinking wine, and holding the cup in his hands, and slumbering, inquire about him, if he is one of the wise doctors, &c.
The "gloss" upon it is,
"at the fourth hour, for that is the time of eating, when all go into the shops (or taverns) to eat.
Now whereas they that are drunken are drunken in the night, and not in the day, and much less so soon in the day, when it was not usual, at least with religious men, to have tasted anything by this time; and whereas the apostles, and their company, were sober and religious men, and had never done thing to forfeit their character, it was unreasonable to suppose anything of this kind in them,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:16 - -- But this is that which was spoken by the prophet Joel. This affair, which is a matter of wonder and amazement with some, and of speculation with other...
But this is that which was spoken by the prophet Joel. This affair, which is a matter of wonder and amazement with some, and of speculation with others, and of ridicule and contempt with the most, not the effect of wine, but the fulfilment of a prophecy in Joe 2:28 and is that effusion of the Spirit there foretold; and this prophecy is by the Jews themselves allowed to belong to the world to come, or to the times of the Messiah. Some of their commentators o say, that it refers
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:17 - -- And it shall come to pass in the last days,.... In Joel it is, "afterwards"; instead of which Peter puts, "in the last days"; the sense is the same: a...
And it shall come to pass in the last days,.... In Joel it is, "afterwards"; instead of which Peter puts, "in the last days"; the sense is the same: and so R. David Kimchi, a celebrated commentator with the Jews, observes, that "afterwards" is the same "as in the last days", and which design the times of the Messiah; for according to a rule given by the same writer on Isa 2:2 wherever the last days are mentioned, the days of the Messiah are intended,
Saith God, or "the Lord", as the Vulgate Latin and Ethiopic versions read. This clause is added by Peter, and is not in Joel; and very rightly, since what follow are the words of God speaking in his own person:
I will pour out my Spirit upon all flesh; not "upon every animal", as the Ethiopic version renders it: this is extending the sense too far, as the interpretation the above named Jewish writer gives, limits it too much, restraining it to the people of Israel. It being a maxim with them, that the Shekinah does not dwell but in the land of Israel; and also that prophecy, or a spirit of prophecy, does not dwell on any but in the holy land r. For though as it regards the first times of the Gospel, it may chiefly respect some persons among the Jews, yet not to the exclusion of the Gentiles; and it designs all sorts of persons of every age, sex, state, and condition, as the distribution afterwards shows. Jarchi's note upon it is,
"upon everyone whose heart is made as tender as flesh; as for example, "and I will give an heart of flesh", Eze 36:26.
By the Spirit is meant the gifts of the Spirit, the spirit of wisdom and knowledge, of understanding the mysteries of the Gospel, of explaining the Scriptures, and of speaking with tongues; and by the pouring of it out, is intended the abundance and great plenty of the gifts and graces of the Spirit bestowed; but yet not all of him, or all his gifts and grace in the large extent of them: therefore it is said, not "my Spirit", but "of my Spirit", or "out of it"; as out of an unfathomable, immeasurable, and inexhaustible fountain and fulness:
and your sons and your daughters shall prophesy: or foretell things to come, as Agabus, and the four daughters of Philip the Evangelist, Act 21:9.
and your young men shall see visions; as Ananias, Act 9:10, and Peter, Act 10:17 and Paul when a young man, Act 22:17 and John, the youngest of the apostles, Rev 1:10 though he was in years, when he saw the visions in the Revelations:
and your old men shall dream dreams; or shall have night visions, as Paul at Troas, Act 16:9 and in his voyage when at sea, Act 27:23. The order of the words is inverted, this last clause stands first in Joel; perhaps the change is made, because the apostles were young men, on whom the Spirit was poured; and the thing was the more wonderful that so it should be, than if they had been old men,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:18 - -- And on my servants, and on my handmaidens,.... In Joel it is only the servants and the handmaids; and which Kimchi interprets of strangers that should...
And on my servants, and on my handmaidens,.... In Joel it is only the servants and the handmaids; and which Kimchi interprets of strangers that should stand in the land of Israel, and serve the Israelites. But these phrases do not seem so much to describe the civil state and condition of those persons, as their religious character, being such as were brought, by the power of divine grace, to yield a cheerful obedience to the will of God; though it may also regard the former, and show, that with God there is no distinction and difference of bond or free, of rich or poor; contrary to a maxim of the Jews s, that the Shekinah does not dwell but upon a wise man, a mighty man, and a rich man,
I will pour out, in those days, of my Spirit, and they shall prophesy; see the note on the preceding verse, from whence this clause, "and they shall prophesy", is repeated; for it is not in the text in Joel; which is done to point at the end and effect of the Spirit being poured down upon them,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:19 - -- And I will show wonders in heaven above,.... The word above is not in Joel, nor in the Syriac version here, as neither the word "beneath", in the next...
And I will show wonders in heaven above,.... The word above is not in Joel, nor in the Syriac version here, as neither the word "beneath", in the next clause. This may refer either to the appearance of angels, and of an extraordinary star at the birth of Christ; or rather to comets and blazing stars, and particularly to that comet which, in the form of a flaming sword, hung over Jerusalem, and the forms of armies in the heavens engaged together, which were seen before, and portended the destruction of that city t:
and signs in the earth beneath; meaning either the miracles done by Christ, and his apostles, on earth; or those surprising events in Judea and in Jerusalem, a flame was seen in the temple, the doors of it opened of themselves, and a voice was heard in it, saying, let us go hence; and an idiot went about several years together, saying, woe to the people, woe to the city, &c,
blood, and fire, and vapour of smoke: by blood is meant not the blood of Christ, either his bloody sweat in the garden, or what he shed on the cross, but the blood of the Jews, shed in war, and in internal seditions and murders: and by "fire" is designed not the Holy Ghost, who now appeared in cloven tongues, as of fire, but the conflagration of the city and temple of Jerusalem, and of many other towns and villages. And by "vapours of smoke"; or, as in the Hebrew text, "pillars of smoke", ascending in upright columns, like palm trees, are intended literally, the vast quantities of smoke that would arise from such burnings; so that the very heavens would be clouded and darkened with them, and sun and moon appear in the following form,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:20 - -- The sun shall be turned into darkness,.... As at the death of Christ, by a total eclipse of it:
and the moon into blood; as at the opening of the s...
The sun shall be turned into darkness,.... As at the death of Christ, by a total eclipse of it:
and the moon into blood; as at the opening of the sixth seal, Rev 6:12.
before that great and notable day of the Lord come; when he shall come in power and great glory, as he did in a few years after this, to take vengeance on the Jews, and destroy their nation, city, and temple; in which there was a display of his greatness, and power, and which was awful and "terrible" to them, as in Joel it is called; see Gill on Mat 24:29.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:21 - -- And it shall come to pass,.... Even at that time, when these signs shall appear, and the destruction is hastening on, that
whosoever shall call on ...
And it shall come to pass,.... Even at that time, when these signs shall appear, and the destruction is hastening on, that
whosoever shall call on the name of the Lord; shall believe in the Lord Jesus Christ with the heart, and shall confess him with the mouth, and shall worship him in Spirit and in truth, and submit to all his ordinances and commands; for invocation of the Lord includes the whole of worship, internal and external:
shall be saved; or delivered from that temporal destruction which came upon the Jews, as the Christians were by removing from Jerusalem to Pella, as they were directed u; and shall be saved with a spiritual and everlasting salvation by Jesus Christ; see Gill on Rom 10:13.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:22 - -- Ye men of Israel hear these words,.... The Arabic version prefaces this passage with these words, "in those days Peter stood and said unto the people"...
Ye men of Israel hear these words,.... The Arabic version prefaces this passage with these words, "in those days Peter stood and said unto the people"; as if it was not on the same day, and the following oration was a new one, and not a continued discourse with the former; whereas it was delivered at the same time, and is in connection with what goes before. Only the apostle having finished the vindication of his brethren, and the whole society, and set that matter in a clear light; and being willing to take this opportunity of preaching Christ to the Jews, addresses them under another character in a new form of words, though to the same sense as in Act 2:14 in order to soften their minds, and raise their attention, and proceeds to describe the person, the subject of his following discourse:
Jesus of Nazareth; first by his name Jesus, which the angel gave him before his birth; and that for this reason, because he is the Saviour of his people from their sins, and which his name signifies; and next by the place, not where he was born, for that was Bethlehem, but where he was educated and brought up, and where he lived the greatest part of his life, Nazareth, a city in Galilee; whence he was so called, generally by way of contempt, and not so much to distinguish him from any of the same name:
a man approved of God; he was truly and really a man, who in his incarnation assumed a true body, and a reasonable soul; but he was not a mere man, and much less a common and ordinary man: he was the famous son of man the Scriptures speak of; the man of God's right hand, the man his fellow, a great, mighty, and wonderful man: "approved by God"; or shown, declared, and demonstrated by him, to be sent by him in human nature, to be the true Messiah and Saviour of the world, who was the chosen of God, loved and honoured by him, whom he sealed, and bore a testimony to; and that not privately, but openly and publicly:
among you; in the face of all the people in Jerusalem, and in the temple, and at the time of public feasts:
by miracles, and wonders, and signs; by dispossessing devils, cleansing lepers, restoring sight to the blind, causing the deaf to hear, the dumb to speak, and the lame to walk, and by raising the dead:
which God did by him in the midst of you; not but that he did the miracles himself, as and the Son of God; but as he was man, God did them, by his human nature, as the instrument: the meaning is, that his miracles were wrought by a divine power, and not by a diabolical influence, by Beelzebub the prince of devils, as the Pharisees blasphemously said of him; and these were done, not in a corner, but in the midst of them:
as ye yourselves also know; for they must be sensible and convicted in their own consciences, not only that these things were done by him, but that they could not be done by him, unless God was with him, or he was from God; and so were testimonies both of the divine approbation of him, and of his deity and Messiahship.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:23 - -- Him being delivered,.... By himself, according to his own will, for he gave, or delivered himself for his people; and by his Father, who spared him no...
Him being delivered,.... By himself, according to his own will, for he gave, or delivered himself for his people; and by his Father, who spared him not, but delivered him up for us all; and by Judas, one of his disciples, who, for a sum of money, delivered him into the hands of the Jews; and by them he was delivered up to Pilate, the Roman governor; and by him back again to the Jews, and to the soldiers, to crucify him: and all this
by the determinate counsel and foreknowledge of God; God not only foreknew that it would be, but determined that it should be, who does all things after the counsel of his own will; and this for the salvation of his people, and for the glorifying of his divine perfections: though this fixed resolution, settled purpose, and wise determination of God, did not in the least excuse the sin of Judas in betraying him, or of Pilate in condemning him, or of the Jews in crucifying him; nor did it at all infringe the liberty of their wills in acting, who did what they did, not by force, but voluntarily:
ye have taken, and by wicked hands have crucified and slain; they took him in the garden, and bound him, and had him first before the high priest, then before Pilate, the Roman governor, and cried out with one voice, in a most vehement manner, for the crucifying of him, which, at their importunity, was granted, though no fault was found in him; and therefore are justly charged with slaying, or murdering him.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:24 - -- Whom God raised up,.... From the dead; for though his life was taken away by men, he was raised to life again by God the Father, to whom the resurrect...
Whom God raised up,.... From the dead; for though his life was taken away by men, he was raised to life again by God the Father, to whom the resurrection of Christ is generally ascribed, though not to the exclusion of Christ himself, and the blessed Spirit; and this being what the apostles were witnesses of, and the Jews endeavoured to stifle as much as they could, it being the sign Christ gave them of the truth of his Messiahship; and this being also a fundamental article of the Christian religion, the apostle enlarges upon it:
having loosed the pains of death; this may be understood either of what Christ had done for his people by dying for them; he had abolished death; he had took away its sting, and delivered them from the curse of it, having fulfilled the law, satisfied justice, and made full atonement for their sin; so that though they die, death is not a penal evil to them, nor shall they always continue under the power of it: or of what God did in raising Christ from the dead; he delivered him from the power of death, by which he was held in the grave, and which is expressed by a word which signifies pains and sorrows, even those of a woman in travail; which though he felt not now, he had gone through them; his low state in the grave was the effect of them; and these are said to be loosed when he was raised up, he being so entirely delivered from them, as that they should never come upon him more: and it is to be observed, that the same word in the Hebrew language, and so in the Chaldee and Syriac, in which Peter might speak, signifies both cords and sorrows; and we often read in Talmudic and Rabbinic w writings, of
Because it was not possible he should be holden of it: of death, and under the power of it; partly, because of the power and dignity of his person, as the Son of God, he being still the Prince of life, and who by dying abolished death, and him that had the power of it; and partly, because as the surety of his people, he had made full satisfaction for sin, and had brought in an everlasting righteousness, and therefore ought in justice to be discharged, and detained a prisoner no longer; as also because of the prophecies of the Old Testament concerning his resurrection, which must be fulfilled, as follows,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:25 - -- For David speaketh concerning him,.... The Messiah, the Lord Jesus Christ, in Psa 16:8. The whole psalm belongs to the Messiah, and everything concern...
For David speaketh concerning him,.... The Messiah, the Lord Jesus Christ, in Psa 16:8. The whole psalm belongs to the Messiah, and everything concerning the person in it agrees with him; such as his trust in God, Psa 16:1 as he was man and Mediator; his very great regard to the saints, and delight in them, Psa 16:2 his disregard to others who were hastening after another God, or another Saviour, whose sacrifices, as an high priest, he would not offer up, nor make intercession for them, Psa 16:4 his exceeding great satisfaction in having the God of Israel for his portion, and in having his lot cast among his peculiar people, who were a delightful inheritance to him, Psa 16:5 his thankfulness for advice and direction in the time of his sorrows and sufferings; and his dependence on the almighty power of God to support and protect him, Psa 16:7 and the joy and comfort he was filled with in the view of his resurrection from the dead, and his enjoyment of the heavenly glory, Psa 16:9,
I foresaw the Lord always before my face; Christ always had Jehovah in view throughout the whole of his life; and in his last moments he had respect unto the glory of his perfections, as the ultimate end of his obedience and sufferings; and to his purposes, council, and covenant, which were to be accomplished by him; and to his will and command in preaching the Gospel, working miracles, going about to do good, in obeying the precept, and bearing the penalty of the law; as well as to his promises, and his power to assist, support, and preserve him, as man and Mediator:
for he is on my right hand; which expresses his nearness to him, his presence with him, his readiness to assist him, and his protection of him; as if he was his second that stood by him, to take his part, and, if need be, to take up his cause, and defend him from his enemies; see Psa 109:31.
that I should not be moved; from his station, place, and duty; from the cause he was engaged in, so as to relinquish it; or with the fear of men, or fury of devils, or wrath of God, whilst he was doing and suffering, according to the will of God.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:26 - -- Therefore did my heart rejoice,.... Because that he had always the truth, faithfulness, and power of God in his view, and the presence and protection ...
Therefore did my heart rejoice,.... Because that he had always the truth, faithfulness, and power of God in his view, and the presence and protection of God with him; and which are sufficient to make the hearts of his people, as well as of him, to rejoice:
and my tongue was glad: in the Hebrew text it is, "my glory"; and so the Syriac version renders it here; which Kimchi explains of the soul, because that is the glory of the body; but our apostle rightly interprets it of the tongue, which is so called, Psa 30:12 and Psa 57:8 and Psa 108:1 because it is both the glory of man, for that being endowed with the faculty of speaking, gives him a glory above the brute creatures; and because it is that by which he glorifies God, by ascribing greatness to him, speaking of his marvellous works, and singing his praises, as Christ did, in the great congregation, among his apostles, a little before his death,
Moreover also my flesh shall rest in hope, or "safely"; meaning, that his body should lie quietly in the grave, as in its resting place from all toil and labour, pains and sorrows, and be secure from worms, or any corruption. Or this may be understood of his person being in a quiet, firm, and full hope of the resurrection of the dead, and of eternal life and glory.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:27 - -- Because thou wilt not leave my soul in hell,.... This is an apostrophe, or an address to his Father, who he believed would not leave his soul, as sepa...
Because thou wilt not leave my soul in hell,.... This is an apostrophe, or an address to his Father, who he believed would not leave his soul, as separate from his body, in Hades, in the invisible world of souls, in the place where the souls of departed saints are, but would quickly return it to its body, and reunite them; or else, that he would not leave his dead body, for so
neither wilt thou suffer thine Holy One to see corruption. The character of an "Holy One" well agrees with Christ, both as God, or with respect to his divine nature, holiness being a perfection in it, and in which he is glorious; and as man, he being holy in his nature, harmless in his life and conversation: all his doctrines were pure and holy, and so were all his works; and all his administrations in the discharge of every of his office; and he is the efficient cause and lain of all the holiness of his people; they are sanctified in him, and by him, and have all their sanctification from him. The word may be rendered, "thy merciful", or "bountiful one"; and such Christ is, a merciful, as well as faithful high priest; and who has shown great compassion both to the bodies and souls of men, and has been very beneficent and liberal in the distributions of his grace and goodness. Now, though he died, and was laid in the grave, and buried, yet God would not suffer him to lie there so long as to be corrupted and putrefied, which is the sense of seeing corruption: and so the Jews themselves explain the last clause of the preceding verse, in connection with this, "my flesh shall rest in hope", that no worm or maggot should have power over it, or corrupt it,
"Seven fathers (they say x) dwell in eternal glory, and there is no
And which sense also is mentioned by one of their commentators of note y, who thus paraphrases the words:
"whilst I am alive it shall rest safely, for thou wilt deliver me from all hurt; and in the mystical sense, or according to the Midrash, after death; intimating, that no maggot or worm should have power over him;
which was not true of David, but is of the Messiah,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:28 - -- Thou hast made known to me the ways of life,.... That is, thou hast raised me from the dead. When God raised Christ from the dead, he showed him, or m...
Thou hast made known to me the ways of life,.... That is, thou hast raised me from the dead. When God raised Christ from the dead, he showed him, or made him to know experimentally the way of life, or the way of the resurrection from death to life; and this path of life, or of the resurrection to an immortal and eternal life, was first shown to Christ, who is the first fruits of them that slept, and the first begotten from the dead,
Thou shalt make me full of joy with thy countenance; or glorious presence, in which is fulness of joy; which Christ, as man, is in, and fully possessed of, being exalted at the right hand of God, and crowned with glory and honour, and has all the joy that was set before him in his sufferings and death.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:29 - -- Men and brethren, let me freely speak unto you,.... The apostle calls the Jews, brethren, whom he before only styled men of Judea, and men of Israel, ...
Men and brethren, let me freely speak unto you,.... The apostle calls the Jews, brethren, whom he before only styled men of Judea, and men of Israel, because they were his brethren according to the flesh, as many of them afterwards were in a spiritual relation; and the rather he adds this affectionate appellation to soften their minds, and prepare them to receive the account he was about to give of David, and of his prophecy of the Messiah, and his resurrection; in which he used much freedom of speech, consistent with truth, good sense, and strong reasoning; which he thought might be allowed to take, and they would not be displeased at, in discoursing to them
of the patriarch David; who was a "head of the fathers", as the Syriac and Arabic versions render it; a prince of the tribes of Israel; one of the greatest kings the tribes of Israel ever had; and therefore this name well becomes him; though it is more commonly given to Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, and the heads of the twelve tribes:
that he is both dead, and buried, and his sepulchre is with us unto this day; it is a plain case, and a certain matter of fact, which nobody disputes or denies, that David really died, and was laid in the grave, and that his monument, or tomb, was still extant, so that he was not risen from the dead; and therefore the above citation could not respect him, but another, even the Messiah, and had been literally fulfilled in Jesus. The Jews say z, that David died on the day of Pentecost; which was the very day on which Peter was now preaching; he was buried in Jerusalem, and his sepulchral monument was in being when Peter said these words. And Josephus relates a, that the sepulchre of David was opened by Hyrcanus, who took out of it three thousand talents; and that it was afterwards opened by Herod b: which, if true, may serve to render credible what Peter says concerning its continuance to that day. Though it may be questioned whether any such treasure was ever in it, or taken out of it; and still less credible is the account which R. Benjamin c gives of two men in his time, who, under the wall of Zion, found a cave, which led them to a large palace built on pillars of marble, and covered with gold and silver; and within it was a table, and a golden sceptre, and a crown of gold; and this, says the author, was the sepulchre of David, king of Israel,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:30 - -- Therefore being a prophet,.... Who could foretell things to come, as he did many things concerning the sufferings and death of Christ, and the circums...
Therefore being a prophet,.... Who could foretell things to come, as he did many things concerning the sufferings and death of Christ, and the circumstances attending it, concerning his resurrection, ascension, and session at the right hand of God. So the title of his "Psalms", in the Syriac version, runs thus; the "Book of the Psalms of David, King and Prophet": and in the Arabic version, "the First Book of the Psalms of David the Prophet, King of the Children of Israel". Though the Jews d will not allow him, nor Solomon, nor Daniel, to be strictly and properly prophets, they make a difference between prophecy, and the Holy Spirit. They own, that the book of Psalms was written under the influence of the Holy Spirit, but not by prophecy; and therefore they place it among the Hagiographa, or holy writings, but not among the Prophets: though after all, Kimchi allows David to be a prophet, since he is called a man of God; for he says this name is not said of any but
and knowing that God had sworn with an oath to him; as he did in Psa 132:11.
that of the fruit of his loins; of one that should be of his seed, that should spring from him, even the Virgin Mary, who was of the house and lineage of David:
according to the flesh, he would raise up Christ; would send him forth, according to the human nature; for this phrase respects not his resurrection from the dead, but his incarnation or exhibition in the flesh, as in Act 3:26. This clause is wanting in the Vulgate Latin, Syriac, and Ethiopic versions, and in the Alexandrian copy, and should be read in a parenthesis; since it is not in the text in Psa 132:11.
to sit on his throne; on the throne of David his father; see Gill on Luk 1:32.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:31 - -- He seeing this before,.... Or by a spirit of prophecy foreseeing it, that according to God's promise and oath, the Messiah would be raised up, and spr...
He seeing this before,.... Or by a spirit of prophecy foreseeing it, that according to God's promise and oath, the Messiah would be raised up, and spring from his seed; and also by the same Spirit foresaw that he would suffer and die, and be laid in the grave, the pit of corruption:
spake of the resurrection of Christ; from the dead, to the sense of the following words, in Psa 16:10.
that his soul was not left in hell: neither his separate soul in Hades, nor his body in the grave,
neither his flesh did see corruption; or his body, or his "carcass", as the Syriac version renders it, did not lie so long in the grave as to rot and putrefy.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:32 - -- This Jesus hath God raised up,.... That is, from the dead,
whereof we are all witnesses; namely, of his resurrection, they having seen him, and hea...
This Jesus hath God raised up,.... That is, from the dead,
whereof we are all witnesses; namely, of his resurrection, they having seen him, and heard him, and ate, and drank, and conversed with him since his resurrection; and which was true, not of the twelve apostles only, but of the whole company: or "we are all his witnesses"; either of God, who raised Christ from the dead; or of Christ who was raised by him; and indeed, they bore testimony to the whole of this, to Christ, and to his resurrection, and to its being done by God the Father.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:33 - -- Therefore being by the right hand of God exalted,.... After his resurrection he ascended to heaven, and was exalted in human nature; "to the right han...
Therefore being by the right hand of God exalted,.... After his resurrection he ascended to heaven, and was exalted in human nature; "to the right hand of God", as the Ethiopic version; and the Arabic version used by De Dieu read; an honour that never was conferred on any creature, angels or men, besides: or he was exalted and raised to the high honour and dignity of a Prince and Saviour, of Lord, Head, and King, so as to have a name, dominion, and authority over all, by the mighty power of God, which is sometimes called his right hand; see Psa 118:15.
and having received of the Father the promise of the Holy Ghost; which the Father had promised to pour forth in the last days, Isa 44:3 and which Christ had promised to send from the Father, Joh 14:16 and which, upon his ascension and exaltation, he received as Mediator from him; see Psa 68:18 compared with Eph 4:8.
he hath shed forth this; this Holy Spirit, or promised Spirit, these gifts of his; and so the Syriac version renders it, "he hath shed forth this gift"; which expresses both the plenty and abundance of the gifts bestowed, and the liberality of Christ in the donation of them: it is added,
which ye now see and hear; meaning the cloven tongues, as of fire, which they saw sitting on the disciples, and the various languages which they heard them speak. The Alexandrian copy, the Vulgate Latin and Ethiopic versions, leave out the word "now": and the Syriac, in the room of it, reads, "behold".
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:34 - -- For David is not ascended into the heavens,.... In his body, that being still in the grave, in his sepulchre, which remained to that day, though in hi...
For David is not ascended into the heavens,.... In his body, that being still in the grave, in his sepulchre, which remained to that day, though in his soul he was ascended to heaven; his Spirit had returned to God that gave it, and was among the spirits of just men made perfect: but he saith himself, in Psa 110:1 "the Lord said unto my Lord, sit thou on my right hand"; see Gill on Mat 22:44.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:36 - -- Therefore let all the house of Israel know assuredly,.... "With certain knowledge", as the Arabic version renders it; with full assurance of it: this ...
Therefore let all the house of Israel know assuredly,.... "With certain knowledge", as the Arabic version renders it; with full assurance of it: this is a case that is plain and clear, a matter of fact that may be depended on; which all the people of Israel, called "the house of Israel", a phrase frequently used of that people in the Old Testament, which every individual of that body of men might be assured of:
that God hath made that same Jesus, whom ye have crucified, both Lord and Christ; that is, that God the Father had not only constituted and appointed Jesus of Nazareth to be the Messiah, the Lord of lords, and King of kings, and had invested him with that office, power, and authority, but he had made him manifest to be so by the Holy Spirit which he had received, and now poured forth the same, and not another; even him whom they had rejected with so much contempt; whom they had treated in such a scornful and brutish manner; had spit upon, buffeted, and scourged, and at last crucified; and yet, now, even he had all power in heaven, and in earth, given him, and was exalted above every name; that in his name every knee should bow. The phrase of "making a Messiah", or "Christ", is used in the Talmudic writings f,
"The holy blessed God sought to make Hezekiah the Messiah, or Christ, and Sennacherib Gog and Magog; the property or attribute of justice said before the holy blessed God, Lord of the world, and what was David, the king of Israel, who said so many songs and hymns before thee, and thou didst not make him Christ? Hezekiah, for whom thou hast done all these wonders, and he hath not said a song before thee, wilt thou make him the Messiah, or Christ? wherefore his mouth was shut up; and the earth opened, and said a song before him; Lord of the world, I have said a song before thee, for this righteous one,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:37 - -- Now when they heard this,.... Or "him", as the Arabic version; that is, Peter speaking these things, describing the character of Jesus of Nazareth; op...
Now when they heard this,.... Or "him", as the Arabic version; that is, Peter speaking these things, describing the character of Jesus of Nazareth; opening the prophecies concerning him; asserting his resurrection from the dead, and exaltation at the right hand of God; ascribing this wonderful affair, of speaking with divers tongues, to his effusion of the Spirit; and charging them home with the iniquity of crucifying him:
they were pricked in their hearts; the word of God entered into them, and was as a sharp sword in them, which cut and laid open their hearts, and the sin and wickedness of them; they saw themselves guilty of the crime laid to their charge, and were filled with remorse of conscience for it; they felt pain at their hearts, and much uneasiness, and were seized with horror and trembling; they were wounded in their spirits, being hewn and cut down by the prophets and apostles of the Lord, and slain by the words of his mouth; they were as dead men in their own apprehension; and indeed, a prick, a cut, or wound in the heart is mortal:
and said unto Peter, and to the rest of the apostles, men and brethren, what shall we do? the persons they before mocked at, they are glad to advise with, what should be done in this their sad and wretched case; what they should do to obtain the favour of God, the forgiveness of their sins, and everlasting salvation. Convinced, awakened sinners, are generally at first upon a covenant of works; are for doing something to atone for their past crimes, to set themselves right in the sight of God, to ingratiate themselves into his favour, and procure the pardon of their sins, and the inheritance of eternal life. And they seem also to be at a loss about the way of salvation, what is to be done to attain it, or how, and by what means it is to be come at; and are almost ready to despair of it, their sin appearing in so dreadful a light, and attended with such aggravating circumstances. Beza's ancient copy reads, "some of them said to Peter", &c. not all that heard, but those that were pricked to the heart.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:38 - -- Then Peter said unto them,.... Being the mouth of the apostles, and being ready to give advice, and speak a word of comfort to their distressed minds:...
Then Peter said unto them,.... Being the mouth of the apostles, and being ready to give advice, and speak a word of comfort to their distressed minds:
repent: change your minds, entertain other thoughts, and a different opinion of Jesus of Nazareth, than you have done; consider him, and believe in him, as the true Messiah and Saviour of the world; look upon him, not any more as an impostor, and a blasphemer, but as sent of God, and the only Redeemer of Israel; change your voice and way of speaking of him, and your conduct towards his disciples and followers; a change of mind will produce a change of actions in life and conversation: bring forth fruits meet for repentance; and make an open and hearty profession of repentance for this your sin. And this the apostle said, to distinguish between a legal and an evangelical repentance; the former is expressed in their being pricked to the heart, on which they were not to depend; the latter he was desirous they might have, and show forth; which springs from the love of God, is attended with views, or at least hopes of pardoning grace and mercy, and with faith in Christ Jesus: it lies in a true sight and sense of sin, under the illuminations and convictions of the Spirit of God; in a sorrow for it, after a godly sort, and because it is committed against a God of love, grace, and mercy, and it shows itself in loathing sin, and in shame for it, in an ingenuous acknowledgement of it, and in forsaking it: and this is moreover urged, to show the necessity of it, as to salvation, for such that God would not have perish, he will have come to repentance; so to their admission to the ordinance of baptism, to which repentance is a pre-requisite; and to which the apostle next advises:
and be baptized everyone of you; that repents and believes; that is, in water, in which John administered the ordinance of baptism; in which Christ himself was baptized, and in which the apostles of Christ administered it; in this Philip baptized the eunuch; and in this were the persons baptized that were converted in Cornelius's house; and it is distinguished from the baptism of the Spirit, or with fire, the extraordinary gifts of the Spirit mentioned in the last clause of this verse; and which ordinance of water baptism was administered by immersion, as the places, Jordan and Aenon, where John performed it, and the instances of it particularly in Christ, and in the eunuch, and the end of it, which is to represent the death, burial, and resurrection of Christ, as well as the primary signification of the word, show. And this is to be done,
in the name of Jesus Christ; not to the exclusion of the Father, and of the Spirit, in whose name also this ordinance is to be administered, Mat 28:19 but the name of Jesus Christ is particularly mentioned, because of these Jews, who had before rejected and denied him as the Messiah; but now, upon their repentance and faith, they are to be baptized in his name, by his authority, according to his command; professing their faith in him, devoting themselves to him, and calling on his name. The end for which this was to be submitted to, is,
for the remission of sins; not that forgiveness of sin could be procured either by repentance, or by baptism; for this is only obtained by the blood of Christ; but the apostle advises these awakened, sensible, repenting, and believing souls, to submit to baptism, that by it their faith might be led to Christ, who suffered and died for their sins, who left them buried in his grave, and who rose again for their justification from them; all which is, in a most lively manner, represented in the ordinance of baptism by immersion: the encouragement to it follows,
and ye shall receive the gift of the Holy Ghost: not the grace of the Spirit, as a regenerator and sanctifier; for that they had already; and is necessary, as previous to baptism; unless it should mean confirmation of that grace, and stability in it, as it appears from Act 2:42 they afterwards had; but rather the extraordinary gifts of the Spirit, particularly the gift of speaking with tongues, which Christ had received from the Father, and had now shed on his apostles; see Act 19:5.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:39 - -- Either of the Messiah, and salvation by him, which was particularly given forth to the people of the Jews; or of the remission of sins, which was a br...
Either of the Messiah, and salvation by him, which was particularly given forth to the people of the Jews; or of the remission of sins, which was a branch of the covenant made with the house of Israel, in a spiritual sense, even the whole household of God; or of the pouring forth of the Spirit: and this promise was not only to them, but to theirs, even to as many of them as belonged to the election of grace; and whom the Lord their God would effectually call by his grace, as the last and limiting clause of the text, and which is to be connected with every part of it, shows:
and to your children: this is the rather mentioned, because these awakened, and converted souls, were not only in great concern about themselves, for their sin of crucifying Christ, but were in great distress about their children, on whom they had imprecated the guilt of Christ's blood, as upon themselves; the thought of which cut them to the heart, and made their hearts bleed, within them: wherefore to relieve them, and administer comfort to them in this their distress, the apostle informs them, that the promise of Christ, and of his grace, was not only to them, who were now called, but it was also to their children; to as many of them as the Lord God should call; and who are the children of the promise, which all the children of the flesh were not, Rom 9:6 and to these the promise should be applied, notwithstanding this dreadful imprecation of theirs:
and to all that are afar off; either in place, as those that were dispersed, among the several nations of the world; and so carried in it a comfortable aspect on the multitude of Jews, that were of every nation under heaven; or in time, who should live in ages to come; or else the Gentiles are intended, who were afar off from God and Christ, and the way of life and salvation by him; see Eph 2:12 even as many as the Lord our God shall call: not externally only, by the ministry of the word, but internally, by his grace and Spirit; with that calling, which is according to the purpose and grace of God, and is inseparably connected with eternal glory; the promise is to all such, and is made good to all such, whether they be Jews or Gentiles, fathers, or children, greater or lesser sinners. The Syriac version reads, "whom God himself shall call".
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:40 - -- And with many other words did he testify and exhort,.... For Luke does not give the sermons of the apostles at length, but a compendium, or specimen o...
And with many other words did he testify and exhort,.... For Luke does not give the sermons of the apostles at length, but a compendium, or specimen of them, and some of the more remarkable things in them; and which, it seems, lay partly in testifying concerning Christ, his person, office, grace, righteousness, and salvation; and against sins and errors, and false doctrine; and in "exhorting" to the exercise of grace, and the discharge of duty; or in comforting distressed minds: for the word used signifies to comfort as well as to exhort; though it seems to have the latter sense here, since it follows:
saying, save yourselves from this untoward generation: meaning, the chief priests, Scribes, and Pharisees, and elders of the people, chiefly, who were a perverse generation of men; and upon whom, for their impenitence and unbelief, for their rejection of the Messiah, and their evil treatment of him, wrath and ruin would come upon them, to the uttermost, very quickly; wherefore the apostle exhorts to separate from them, and not partake of their sins, lest they should also of their plagues; but come out from among them, and so, in a temporal sense, save themselves from the destruction that would quickly come on their nation, city, and temple; and so the Arabic version renders it, "escape from this rough generation".
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:41 - -- Then they that gladly received his word,.... The Syriac version adds, "and believed"; what Peter said concerning repentance and baptism, and especiall...
Then they that gladly received his word,.... The Syriac version adds, "and believed"; what Peter said concerning repentance and baptism, and especially concerning remission of sins, and the gift of the Holy Ghost; and concerning the promise of Christ, and salvation by him, of the pardon of sin, and of the Holy Spirit; which doctrine they received with great joy and gladness, it being suitable to their case; and very "readily", and "willingly", as the Syriac and Arabic versions render it; for they were now made a willing people in the day of God's power, and now that promise, or prophecy, in Psa 110:3 had a remarkable accomplishment; these converts were the dew of Christ's youth, as well as instances of his powerful and efficacious grace: not all that heard this sermon of Peter's received his doctrine in this manner, only some; and so the Syriac and Arabic versions render the words, "and some of them readily received", &c. which shows the distinguishing grace of God in this instance. The Vulgate Latin and Ethiopic versions leave out the word "gladly", which should not be omitted: and as soon as they had received the word, and were comforted by it, they
were baptized; in water, by immersion, for which there was great conveniency in Jerusalem, and in the temple, where the apostles now were: in the city of Jerusalem, in private houses, they had their baths for purifications, by immersion, as in the case of menstruous, gonorrhoeas, and other defilements, by touching unclean persons, and things, which were very frequent; so that a digger of cisterns, for such uses, and others, was a business in Jerusalem,
"Says Simeon Sicana g, who was a digger of cisterns, ditches, and caves, in Jerusalem, to R. Jochanan ben Zaccai, I am as great a man as thou art; he made answer to him, why? (or your reason for it;) he replied to him, because I am employed in the necessary affairs of many, (or of the public,) as you are; for says he, if a man comes to you for judgment, or to ask a question, you say to him, drink out of this cistern, whose waters are pure, and cold; or, if a woman asks thee concerning her monstrous, you say to her,
And in the temple there was an apartment, called
"the sea was
The reason of the objection is, because bathing, or dipping for purification, was not made in vessels, but in gatherings, or pools of water upon the ground; and which objection is removed, by observing, that a pipe was laid from the fountain of Etam, which supplied it with spring, or running water; so that the molten sea, and the lavers, were looked upon all one as pools of water, or springs of water, and as fit for immersion. This sea was ten cubits from brim to brim, and five cubits high, and held two thousand baths, 1Ki 7:23. Yea, three thousand, as in 2Ch 6:5 and every laver held forty baths, 1Ki 7:38 and every bath held four gallons and a half, and between seven and eight gallons of wine measure. And it may be observed, that there were also in Jerusalem the pool of Bethesda, into which persons went down at certain times, Joh 5:1 and the pool of Siloam, where persons bathed, and dipped themselves, on certain occasions; See Gill on Joh 9:7. So that there were conveniences enough for baptism by immersion in this place: and the same day there were added; unto them, or to the church, as in Act 2:47 the whole company of the hundred and twenty disciples; the Arabic version supplies, "among the believers": the number of those, that were added to them, were about three thousand souls; or persons, men, and women; and their number is no objection to their being baptized by immersion. As for convenient places to baptize in, there were enough, as we have seen already; and there were administrators sufficient for this work: had there been no more than the twelve apostles, it was but two hundred and fifty men apiece; and there were twelve separate places in the temple, where they might be baptizing at the same time; there were the ten lavers, the molten sea, and the dipping room, so that the work was not so very heavy nor difficult; but besides, there were seventy disciples, who, as they were preachers of the word, were administrators of this ordinance; and supposing them all employed, as they might be, at the same time, either in the temple, or at the pools in Jerusalem, or at the baths, and cisterns, in private houses; they would not have more than six or seven and thirty persons apiece to baptize; and there was time enough in the day for it; it was but the third hour, or nine o'clock in the morning, when Peter began his sermon; and allowing an hour for that, there were eight hours more in the day, according to the Jewish reckoning of twelve hours in a day; so that the business might be done without any hurry, or great fatigue; and indeed, the objection, as to time, would equally lie against sprinkling, or pouring, as dipping; at least the difference is very inconsiderable; for the same form of words must be pronounced in administering the ordinance by the one, as by the other; and a person being ready, is very near as soon dipped into water, as water can be taken, and sprinkled, or poured on the face. Besides, after all, though these persons were added to the church the same day, it does not necessarily follow from the text, that they were all baptized in one day; the words do not oblige us to such a sense: I own, I am of opinion, that they were all baptized in one day; and that on the same day they were baptized, they were joined to the church; and that day was the day of Pentecost, the day on which the law was given on Mount Sinai, and on which now the Gospel was published to men of all nations under the heavens; the day on which the firstfruits were offered to the Lord, and on which now the firstfruits of the death, resurrection, and ascension of Christ were brought in to him. Let the order be observed, they were first baptized, and then added to the church,
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:42 - -- And they continued steadfastly in the apostles' doctrine,.... And which is the same with the doctrine of Christ, of which he is the author, preacher, ...
And they continued steadfastly in the apostles' doctrine,.... And which is the same with the doctrine of Christ, of which he is the author, preacher, and subject; the substance of which is peace, pardon, righteousness, and salvation by him: this the apostles received from Christ, and constantly taught in their ministry; for which reason, it is called theirs; and this these young converts had embraced gladly; and were not only believers of it, but persevering believers; they were constant hearers of it; they continually attended on the ministry of the apostles, and held fast the form of sound words they had received from them; and stood fast in the faith of the Gospel, notwithstanding all the reproach cast upon it, and the afflictions they endured for it:
and fellowship; with the apostles and other saints, in spiritual conversation with them, in private, and in communion with them at the Lord's table in public: and so the Vulgate Latin reads this clause, in connection with the next, thus, "in the communication of breaking of bread"; to which agrees the Syriac version, and "they communicated in prayer, and in breaking of the eucharist"; though it seems better to understand this of a distinct branch of fellowship, or communication, and may rather intend liberality and beneficence, in which sense it is used, Rom 15:26 and so expresses their constant contributions towards the support of the apostles, as ministers of the word and of the poor members of the church; a duty which, in both its branches, is incumbent on those who have it in their power to perform, and which these first Christians were remarkable for:
and in breaking of bread; or "of the eucharist": as the Syriac version renders it, which was an usual name with the ancients for the Lord's supper; and which seems to be intended here, and not eating common bread, or a common meal; seeing it is here mentioned with religious exercises: and though the Jews used to begin their meals with breaking of bread, yet the whole repast, or meal, is never by them called by that name; and for what reason these saints should be commended for keeping their common meals, cannot be said, unless to show their sociableness, agreement, and brotherly love in eating together; and which is not hinted at here, but in Act 2:46 where it is mentioned as something distinct from this: it seems rather therefore to design, that they were constant at the Lord's table, kept their places there, and duly attended whenever the ordinance was administered:
and in prayers: not only in their closets, and in their families, but in the church; in the public prayers of the church, they observed all opportunities of this kind, and gladly embraced them.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:43 - -- Upon every inhabitant of Jerusalem, at least upon a great many of them; and upon all, or the greater part of them that saw, and heard these things; th...
Upon every inhabitant of Jerusalem, at least upon a great many of them; and upon all, or the greater part of them that saw, and heard these things; that heard the apostles speak with divers tongues, and Peter preach in the awful manner he did, and saw so many thousands at once embrace the Gospel of Christ, and profess his name, when it now, by reason of his crucifixion but a few weeks ago, lay under the greatest reproach and scandal; and such a number baptized in water; and also because of the miracles done by the apostles, after mentioned. The Ethiopic version is very odd, "and all animals feared the apostles": as if the very brute creatures stood in awe of them:
and many wonders and signs were done by the apostles: the Vulgate Latin, and Syriac versions add, "in Jerusalem"; such as casting out devils, healing the sick, causing the lame to walk, &c. which were promised by Christ should be done by them; and which were necessary for the confirmation of the Gospel, and of the apostles' mission to preach it. The Vulgate Latin version adds another clause, much like the first part of the text, "and great fear was upon all": and the Alexandrian copy, and some others, read, "in Jerusalem, there was great fear upon all."
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:44 - -- And all that believed were together,.... Not in one place, for no one house could hold them all, their number was now so large; but they "agreed toget...
And all that believed were together,.... Not in one place, for no one house could hold them all, their number was now so large; but they "agreed together", as the Arabic version renders it: all these believers were of one mind and judgment, as to doctrines, they agreed in their sentiments and principles of religion; and they were of one heart and soul, were cordially affected to each other, and mutually were assisting to one another in temporals, as well as in spirituals:
and had all things common: that is, their worldly goods, their possessions and estates; no man called anything peculiarly his own; and whatever he had, his brother was welcome to, and might as freely take, and use it, as if it was his own.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:45 - -- And sold their possessions and goods..... Their houses and lands, their fields and vineyards, their goods, moveable or immoveable:
and parted them ...
And sold their possessions and goods..... Their houses and lands, their fields and vineyards, their goods, moveable or immoveable:
and parted them to all men; that were of their society, not to others:
as every man had need: the rich sold their estates, and divided them among the poor, or gave them such a portion thereof as their present exigencies required. This was done by Jews, and by Jews only; who, when they embraced the Gospel of Christ, were informed that the destruction of their city, and nation, was at hand; and therefore they sold their estates before hand, and put them to this use; which was necessary to be done, both for the support of the Gospel in Judea, and for the carrying and spreading of it among the Gentiles: but is not to be drawn into a precedent, or an example in after times; nor is ever any such thing proposed to the Christian churches, or exhorted to by any of the apostles.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:46 - -- And they continued daily with one accord in the temple,.... Every day they went up to the temple, at the time of prayer, or whenever any religious ser...
And they continued daily with one accord in the temple,.... Every day they went up to the temple, at the time of prayer, or whenever any religious service was to be performed; this was their constant practice, and in this they agreed:
and breaking bread from house to house; either administering the Lord's supper in private houses, as the Jews kept their passover, sometimes administering it at one house, and sometimes at another; or because their number was so large, that one house could not hold them, they divided themselves into lesser bodies; and some met, and had the ordinance administered to them in one house, and some in another: or this may be understood of their common meals, which they ate together at one another's houses in great love and friendship; for
they did eat their meat with gladness; with great thankfulness to the God of their mercies for their daily food, acknowledging that all came from him, and that they were undeserving of it, and with much cheerfulness and affability one among another, without murmuring and repining at their lot, or envying each other, or grudging what each other partook of:
and singleness of heart; without deceit and hypocrisy; either in their thanksgivings to God, or in their welcome and entertainment of each other; and with great sincerity, openness, and frankness before God, and one another. The Syriac version joins this clause with the beginning of the next verse, "with singleness of heart, praising God".
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Gill: Act 2:47 - -- Praising God,.... Not only for their temporal mercies and enjoyments of life, which they partook of in so delightful and comfortable a manner; but for...
Praising God,.... Not only for their temporal mercies and enjoyments of life, which they partook of in so delightful and comfortable a manner; but for their spiritual mercies, that the Lord had been pleased to call them by his grace, and reveal Christ to them, and pardon them who had been such vile sinners, give them a name, and a place in his house, and favour them with the ordinances of it, and such agreeable and delightful company as the saints were, they had fellowship with:
having favour with all the people; they not only behaved with such true and sincere love towards one another in their church state, but with so much wisdom, courteousness, and affability towards them that were without, and walked so becoming the profession they made, that they gained the good will of the generality of the people:
and the Lord added to the church daily such as should be saved: partly by the conversation of these young converts, and chiefly by the ministry of the word, many souls were won and gained to Christ, were wrought upon, and converted, whose hearts the Lord inclined to give up themselves to the church, and walk with them in all the ordinances and commandments of the Lord; and these were such whom God had chosen to salvation by Jesus Christ, and whom he had redeemed by his precious blood, and who were now regenerated and sanctified by the Spirit of God, and so should certainly be saved; which is not always the case of persons added to churches, many of whom have not the root of the matter in them, and so fall away; but is of those who are added by the Lord, for there is a difference between being added by the Lord, and being added by men.
![](images/cmt_minus_head.gif)
expand allCommentary -- Verse Notes / Footnotes
NET Notes -> Act 2:13; Act 2:13; Act 2:13; Act 2:14; Act 2:14; Act 2:14; Act 2:14; Act 2:15; Act 2:15; Act 2:16; Act 2:17; Act 2:17; Act 2:18; Act 2:18; Act 2:19; Act 2:19; Act 2:20; Act 2:21; Act 2:21; Act 2:22; Act 2:22; Act 2:22; Act 2:23; Act 2:23; Act 2:24; Act 2:24; Act 2:24; Act 2:24; Act 2:25; Act 2:26; Act 2:27; Act 2:27; Act 2:28; Act 2:29; Act 2:29; Act 2:29; Act 2:30; Act 2:30; Act 2:30; Act 2:31; Act 2:31; Act 2:31; Act 2:31; Act 2:31; Act 2:31; Act 2:31; Act 2:32; Act 2:33; Act 2:33; Act 2:33; Act 2:33; Act 2:33; Act 2:34; Act 2:35; Act 2:35; Act 2:36; Act 2:36; Act 2:36; Act 2:36; Act 2:36; Act 2:37; Act 2:37; Act 2:38; Act 2:38; Act 2:38; Act 2:38; Act 2:38; Act 2:39; Act 2:40; Act 2:40; Act 2:41; Act 2:41; Act 2:41; Act 2:41; Act 2:42; Act 2:42; Act 2:43; Act 2:43; Act 2:43; Act 2:44; Act 2:45; Act 2:45; Act 2:45; Act 2:46; Act 2:46; Act 2:46; Act 2:46; Act 2:46; Act 2:47; Act 2:47
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: Act 2:14 Grk “let this be known to you.” The passive construction has been translated as an active for stylistic reasons.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: Act 2:16 Note how in the quotation that follows all genders, ages, and classes are included. The event is like a hope Moses expressed in Num 11:29.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: Act 2:18 The words and they will prophesy in Acts 2:18 are not quoted from Joel 2:29 at this point but are repeated from earlier in the quotation (Acts 2:17) f...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: Act 2:19 Here the context indicates the miraculous nature of the signs mentioned; this is made explicit in the translation.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: Act 2:22 Again, the context indicates the miraculous nature of these signs, and this is specified in the translation.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: Act 2:23 Grk “at the hands of lawless men.” At this point the term ἄνομος (anomo") refers to non-Jews who live ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: Act 2:27 Grk “to see,” but the literal translation of the phrase “to see decay” could be misunderstood to mean simply “to look at...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: Act 2:30 An allusion to Ps 132:11 and 2 Sam 7:12-13, the promise in the Davidic covenant.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: Act 2:33 The use of the verb poured out looks back to 2:17-18, where the same verb occurs twice.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: Act 2:34 Sit at my right hand. The word “sit” alludes back to the promise of “seating one on his throne” in v. 30.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: Act 2:35 A quotation from Ps 110:1, one of the most often-cited OT passages in the NT, pointing to the exaltation of Jesus.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: Act 2:39 The promise refers to the promise of the Holy Spirit that Jesus received from the Father in 2:33 and which he now pours out on others. The promise con...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: Act 2:42 Grk “prayers.” This word was translated as a collective singular in keeping with English style.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: Act 2:43 In this context the miraculous nature of these signs is implied. Cf. BDAG 920 s.v. σημεῖον 2.a.
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: Act 2:45 Grk “distributing them” (αὐτά, auta). The referent (the proceeds of the sales) has been specified in the translation ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
NET Notes: Act 2:46 Grk “with gladness and humbleness of hearts.” It is best to understand καρδίας (kardias) as an attribut...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:13 Others ( g ) mocking said, These men are full of new wine.
( g ) The word which he uses here signifies a kind of mocking which is reproachful and ins...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:14 But Peter, standing up with the eleven, ( h ) lifted up his voice, and said unto them, Ye men of Judaea, and all [ye] that dwell at Jerusalem, be this...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:15 For these are not drunken, as ye suppose, seeing it is [but] the ( i ) third hour of the day.
( i ) After the sunrise, which may be about seven or ei...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:16 But this is that which was spoken by the ( k ) prophet Joel;
( k ) There is nothing that can dissolve questions and doubt except testimony taken out ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:17 ( 3 ) And it shall come to pass in the last days, saith God, I will pour out of my Spirit upon ( l ) all ( m ) flesh: and your sons and your daughters...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:21 ( 4 ) And it shall come to pass, [that] whosoever shall ( n ) call on the name of the Lord shall be saved.
( 4 ) The most important use of all the gi...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:22 ( 5 ) Ye men of Israel, hear these words; Jesus of Nazareth, a man ( o ) approved of God among you by miracles and wonders and signs, which God did by...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:23 Him, being delivered by the determinate counsel and ( p ) foreknowledge of God, ye have taken, and by wicked ( q ) hands have crucified and ( r ) slai...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:24 ( 6 ) Whom God hath raised up, having loosed the ( s ) pains of death: because it was not possible that he should be holden of it.
( 6 ) As David for...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:27 Because thou wilt not ( t ) leave my soul in hell, neither wilt thou suffer thine Holy One to see corruption.
( t ) You will not allow me to remain i...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:28 Thou hast ( u ) made known to me the ways of life; thou shalt make me full of joy with thy countenance.
( u ) You have opened to me the way of true l...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:30 Therefore being a prophet, and knowing that God had ( x ) sworn with an oath to him, that of the fruit of his loins, according to the flesh, he would ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:32 ( 7 ) This Jesus hath God raised up, whereof we all are witnesses.
( 7 ) Peter witnesses that Jesus Christ is the appointed everlasting King, which h...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:33 Therefore being by the ( y ) right hand of God exalted, and having received of the Father the promise of the Holy Ghost, he hath shed forth this, whic...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:36 Therefore let all the house of Israel know assuredly, that God hath ( z ) made that same Jesus, whom ye have crucified, both Lord and Christ.
( z ) C...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:38 ( 8 ) Then Peter said unto them, Repent, and be baptized every one of you in the name of Jesus Christ for the remission of sins, and ye shall receive ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:39 For the ( a ) promise is unto you, and to your children, and to all that are afar off, [even] as many as the Lord our God shall call.
( a ) The word ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:40 ( 9 ) And with many other words did he testify and exhort, saying, Save yourselves from this untoward generation.
( 9 ) He is truly joined to the Chu...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:41 ( 10 ) Then they that gladly received his word were baptized: and the same day there were added [unto them] about three thousand souls.
( 10 ) A nota...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:42 ( 11 ) And they continued stedfastly in the apostles' doctrine and ( b ) fellowship, and in ( c ) breaking of bread, and in prayers.
( 11 ) The marks...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:43 ( 12 ) And fear came upon every soul: and many wonders and signs were done by the apostles.
( 12 ) As often as the Lord thinks it to be expedient, he...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:44 ( 13 ) And all that believed were together, and had all things common;
( 13 ) Charity makes all things common with regard to their use, according as ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Geneva Bible: Act 2:46 ( 14 ) And they, continuing daily with one accord in the temple, and breaking bread from house to house, did eat their meat with gladness and singlene...
![](images/cmt_minus_head.gif)
expand allCommentary -- Verse Range Notes
TSK Synopsis -> Act 2:1-47
TSK Synopsis: Act 2:1-47 - --1 The apostles, filled with the Holy Ghost, and speaking divers languages, are admired by some, and derided by others;14 whom Peter disproves;37 he ba...
Combined Bible -> Act 2:13; Act 2:14; Act 2:15; Act 2:16; Act 2:17; Act 2:18; Act 2:19; Act 2:20; Act 2:21; Act 2:22; Act 2:23; Act 2:24; Act 2:25; Act 2:26; Act 2:27; Act 2:28; Act 2:29; Act 2:30; Act 2:31; Act 2:32; Act 2:33; Act 2:34; Act 2:35; Act 2:36; Act 2:37; Act 2:38; Act 2:39; Act 2:40; Act 2:41; Act 2:42; Act 2:43; Act 2:44; Act 2:45; Act 2:46; Act 2:47
Combined Bible: Act 2:13 - --We have in this last sentence an instance of the peculiar use of the term all in the New Testament, to signify a great mass; for after saying that "...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:14 - --15. " Then Peter, standing up with the eleven, lifted up his voice and said to them, Men of Judea, and all you who dwell in Jerusalem, be this known t...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:16 - --Peter continues: (16) " But this is that which was spoken through the prophet Joel; (17) And it shall come to pass in the last days, says God, I wil...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:19 - --So much of Peter's quotation from Joel as we have now considered was in process of fulfillment at the time he was speaking, and is of quite easy inter...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:22 - --It is impossible, at this distance of space and time, to realize, even in a faint degree, the effect upon the minds so wrought up and possessed of suc...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:25 - --There are two points in this announcement which required proof, and to the presentation of this Peter immediately proceeds. Having stated that Jesus w...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:29 - --Having exhibited, in the quotation from David, "the determined purpose, and foreknowledge of God," in reference to the resurrection of Jesus, the apos...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:32 - --33. Thus far in his argument, the speaker has proved that the Messiah must rise from the dead to ascend his throne; but he has yet to prove that Jesu...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:34 - --35. One more point established, not so much in proof of the exaltation of Christ, as to show that it also was a subject of prophesy, and this inimitab...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:36 - --The progressive advances of his argument being now complete, those of them which needed proof being sustained by conclusive evidence, and the remainde...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:37 - --It has already been observed, that up to the moment in which Peter arose to address the audience, although the immersion in the Holy Spirit had occurr...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:38 - --This is the first time, under the reign of Jesus Christ, that this most important of all questions was ever propounded; and the first time, of course,...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:39 - --Peter does not limit the promise of the Holy Spirit to his present audience; but adds, (39) " For the promise is to you and to your children, and to a...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:40 - --The historian had now concluded his report of Peter's discourse, but informs us that he has given only an epitome of it. (40) " And with many other wo...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:41 - --The multitude, who had been so pierced to the heart by Peter's discourse, as to cry out, "Brethren, what shall we do?" were happily surprised to find ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:42 - --Having been immersed simply upon their faith in Jesus Christ, these young disciples had many subordinate objects of faith to become acquainted with, a...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:43 - --Next to this brief notice of the exercises of the Church, we have a glance at the effect of the scenes just described, upon the surrounding community....
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:44 - --45. We are next introduced to a striking instance of the fellowship previously mentioned. (44) " Now all who believed were together, and had all thing...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Combined Bible: Act 2:46 - --47. The further history of the Church, for a short time, is condensed into this brief statement: (46) " And they, continuing daily with one accord in ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Maclaren: Act 2:1-13 - --The Abiding Gift And Its Transitory Accompaniments
And when the day of Pentecost was fully come, they were all with one accord in one place. 2. And s...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Maclaren: Act 2:32-47 - --Peter's First Sermon
This Jesus hath God raised up, whereof we all are witnesses. 33. Therefore being by the right hand of God exalted, and having re...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Maclaren: Act 2:36 - --The Name Above Every Name
Therefore let all the house of Israel know assuredly, that God hath made that same Jesus, whom ye have crucified, both Lord...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Maclaren: Act 2:42 - --A Fourfold Cord
And they continued stedfastly in the Apostles' doctrine and fellowship, and in breaking of bread, and in prayers.'--Acts 2:42.
THE Ea...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Maclaren: Act 2:47 - --A Pure Church An Increasing Church
And the Lord added to the church daily such as should be saved.'--Acts 2:47. And the Lord added to them day by day...
MHCC: Act 2:5-13 - --The difference in languages which arose at Babel, has much hindered the spread of knowledge and religion. The instruments whom the Lord first employed...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
MHCC: Act 2:14-21 - --Peter's sermon shows that he was thoroughly recovered from his fall, and thoroughly restored to the Divine favour; for he who had denied Christ, now b...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
MHCC: Act 2:22-36 - --From this gift of the Holy Ghost, Peter preaches unto them Jesus: and here is the history of Christ. Here is an account of his death and sufferings, w...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
MHCC: Act 2:37-41 - --From the first delivery of that Divine message, it appeared that there was Divine power going with it; and thousands were brought to the obedience of ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
MHCC: Act 2:42-47 - --In these verses we have the history of the truly primitive church, of the first days of it; its state of infancy indeed, but, like that, the state of ...
Matthew Henry: Act 2:5-13 - -- We have here an account of the public notice that was taken of this extraordinary gift with which the disciples were all on a sudden endued. Observe...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Matthew Henry: Act 2:14-36 - -- We have here the first-fruits of the Spirit in the sermon which Peter preached immediately, directed, not to those of other nations in a strange lan...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Matthew Henry: Act 2:37-41 - -- We have seen the wonderful effect of the pouring out of the Spirit, in its influence upon the preachers of the gospel. Peter, in all his life, never...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Matthew Henry: Act 2:42-47 - -- We often speak of the primitive church, and appeal to it, and to the history of it; in these verses we have the history of the truly primitive chur...
Barclay: Act 2:1-13 - --We may never know precisely what happened on the Day of Pentecost but we do know that it was one of the supremely great days of the Christian Church. ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barclay: Act 2:1-13 - --There were three great Jewish festivals to which every male Jew living within twenty miles of Jerusalem was legally bound to come--the Passover, Pent...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barclay: Act 2:14-21 - --This passage brings us face to face with one of the basic conceptions of both the Old and the New Testaments--that of The Day of the Lord. Much in bo...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barclay: Act 2:22-36 - --Here is a passage full of the essence of the thought of the early preachers.
(i) It insists that the Cross was no accident. It belonged to the eterna...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barclay: Act 2:37-41 - --(i) This passage shows with crystal clarity the effect of the Cross. When men realised just what they had done in crucifying Jesus their hearts were ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Barclay: Act 2:42-47 - --In this passage we have a kind of lightning summary of the characteristics of the early Church.
(i) It was a learning Church; it persisted in listeni...
Constable -> Act 2:1-41; Act 2:5-13; Act 2:14-41; Act 2:14-21; Act 2:22-36; Act 2:37-41; Act 2:42-47
Constable: Act 2:1-41 - --5. The birth of the church 2:1-41
The Holy Spirit's descent on the day of Pentecost inaugurated ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: Act 2:5-13 - --The amazement of the onlookers 2:5-13
2:5-6 The Jews living in Jerusalem were probably people from the Diaspora (dispersion, residing outside the land...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: Act 2:14-41 - --Peter's Pentecost sermon 2:14-41
"The miraculous is not self-authenticating, nor does it...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: Act 2:14-21 - --Peter's defense 2:14-21
2:14-15 Peter, again representing the apostles (cf. 1:15), addressed the assembled crowd. He probably gave this speech in the ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: Act 2:22-36 - --Peter's proclamation 2:22-36
In this part of his speech Peter cited three proofs that Jesus was the Messiah: His miracles (v. 22), His resurrection (v...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: Act 2:37-41 - --Peter's exhortation 2:37-41
2:37 The Holy Spirit used Peter's sermon to bring conviction, as Jesus had predicted (John 16:8-11). He convicted Peter's ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Constable: Act 2:42-47 - --6. The early state of the church 2:42-47
Luke now moved from describing what took place on a particular day to a more general description of the life ...
College -> Act 2:1-47
College: Act 2:1-47 - --ACTS 2
F. THE DAY OF PENTECOST (2:1-47)
1. The Apostles Baptized with the Holy Spirit (2:1-4)
1 When the day of Pentecost came, they were all toget...
McGarvey -> Act 2:13; Act 2:14-15; Act 2:16-18; Act 2:19-21; Act 2:22-24; Act 2:25-28; Act 2:29-31; Act 2:32-33; Act 2:34-35; Act 2:36; Act 2:37; Act 2:38; Act 2:39; Act 2:40; Act 2:41; Act 2:42; Act 2:43; Act 2:44-45; Act 2:46-47
McGarvey: Act 2:13 - --13. We have in this last sentence an instance of the peculiar use of the term all in the New Testament, to signify a great mass; for after saying that...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:14-15 - --14, 15. " Then Peter, standing up with the eleven, lifted up his voice and said to them, Men of Judea, and all you who dwell in Jerusalem, be this kno...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:16-18 - --16-18. Peter continues: (16) " But this is that which was spoken through the prophet Joel; (17) And it shall come to pass in the last days, says God, ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:19-21 - --19-21. So much of Peter's quotation from Joel as we have now considered was in process of fulfillment at the time he was speaking, and is of quite eas...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:22-24 - --22-24. It is impossible, at this distance of space and time, to realize, even in a faint degree, the effect upon the minds so wrought up and possessed...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:25-28 - --25-28. There are two points in this announcement which required proof, and to the presentation of this Peter immediately proceeds. Having stated that ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:29-31 - --29-31. Having exhibited, in the quotation from David, "the determined purpose, and foreknowledge of God," in reference to the resurrection of Jesus, t...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:32-33 - --32, 33. Thus far in his argument, the speaker has proved that the Messiah must rise from the dead to ascend his throne; but he has yet to prove that J...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:34-35 - --34, 35. One more point established, not so much in proof of the exaltation of Christ, as to show that it also was a subject of prophesy, and this inim...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:36 - --36. The progressive advances of his argument being now complete, those of them which needed proof being sustained by conclusive evidence, and the rema...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:37 - --37. It has already been observed, that up to the moment in which Peter arose to address the audience, although the immersion in the Holy Spirit had oc...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:38 - --38. This is the first time, under the reign of Jesus Christ, that this most important of all questions was ever propounded; and the first time, of cou...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:39 - --39. Peter does not limit the promise of the Holy Spirit to his present audience; but adds, (39) " For the promise is to you and to your children, and ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:40 - --40. The historian had now concluded his report of Peter's discourse, but informs us that he has given only an epitome of it. (40) " And with many othe...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:41 - --41. The multitude, who had been so pierced to the heart by Peter's discourse, as to cry out, "Brethren, what shall we do?" were happily surprised to f...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:42 - --42. Having been immersed simply upon their faith in Jesus Christ, these young disciples had many subordinate objects of faith to become acquainted wit...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:43 - --43. Next to this brief notice of the exercises of the Church, we have a glance at the effect of the scenes just described, upon the surrounding commun...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:44-45 - --44, 45. We are next introduced to a striking instance of the fellowship previously mentioned. (44) " Now all who believed were together, and had all t...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
McGarvey: Act 2:46-47 - --46, 47. The further history of the Church, for a short time, is condensed into this brief statement: (46) " And they, continuing daily with one accord...
![](images/cmt_minus_head.gif)
expand allCommentary -- Other
Critics Ask: Act 2:16 ACTS 2:16-21 —Did Peter make a mistake in quoting Joel? PROBLEM: In Acts 2 , Pentecost arrives, and the disciples are filled with the Holy Spir...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Critics Ask: Act 2:17 ACTS 2:16-21 —Did Peter make a mistake in quoting Joel? PROBLEM: In Acts 2 , Pentecost arrives, and the disciples are filled with the Holy Spir...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Critics Ask: Act 2:18 ACTS 2:16-21 —Did Peter make a mistake in quoting Joel? PROBLEM: In Acts 2 , Pentecost arrives, and the disciples are filled with the Holy Spir...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Critics Ask: Act 2:19 ACTS 2:16-21 —Did Peter make a mistake in quoting Joel? PROBLEM: In Acts 2 , Pentecost arrives, and the disciples are filled with the Holy Spir...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Critics Ask: Act 2:20 ACTS 2:16-21 —Did Peter make a mistake in quoting Joel? PROBLEM: In Acts 2 , Pentecost arrives, and the disciples are filled with the Holy Spir...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Critics Ask: Act 2:21 ACTS 2:16-21 —Did Peter make a mistake in quoting Joel? PROBLEM: In Acts 2 , Pentecost arrives, and the disciples are filled with the Holy Spir...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Critics Ask: Act 2:34 ACTS 2:34 —Is David in heaven or not? PROBLEM: Peter seems to imply here that David was not in heaven. He wrote, “David did not ascend into t...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Critics Ask: Act 2:38 ACTS 2:38 —Did Peter declare that baptism was necessary for salvation? PROBLEM: Peter seems to be saying that those who responded had to repent...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Critics Ask: Act 2:44 ACTS 2:44-45 —Did early Christians practice communism? PROBLEM: Some have inferred from the fact that these early Christians “sold their poss...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Critics Ask: Act 2:45 ACTS 2:44-45 —Did early Christians practice communism? PROBLEM: Some have inferred from the fact that these early Christians “sold their poss...
Evidence: Act 2:14 POINTS FOR OPEN AIR PREACHING How to Draw a Crowd One of the most difficult things to do is draw a crowd to hear the gospel. Today’s society has...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Evidence: Act 2:31 Messianic prophecy fulfilled : " For thou wilt not leave my soul in hell; neither wilt thou suffer thine Holy One to see corruption" ( Psa 16:10 ). S...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Evidence: Act 2:37 USING THE LAW IN EVANGELISM Peter’s audience was composed of " devout men" ( Act 2:2 ) who were gathered at Pentecost to celebrate the giving of ...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)
Evidence: Act 2:38 PRINCIPLES OF GROWTH FOR THE NEW AND GROWING CHRISTIAN Water Baptism—Sprinkle or Immerse? The Bible says, " Repent, and be baptized every one of...
![](images/cmt_minus.gif)